Selected quad for the lemma: doctrine_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
doctrine_n church_n rome_n transubstantiation_n 3,421 5 11.4318 5 true
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A69143 Miscellania or a treatise Contayning two hundred controuersiall animaduersions, conducing to the study of English controuersies in fayth, and religion. VVritten by N.N.P. and dedicated to the yonger sort of Catholike priests, and other students in the English seminaries beyond the seas. With a pareneticall conclusion vnto the said men. Anderton, Lawrence, attributed name. 1640 (1640) STC 576; ESTC S115142 202,826 416

There are 27 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

saviour_n hand_n that_o you_o will_v bear_v to_o i_o both_o live_a and_o dead_a a_o charitable_a &_o pitiful_a remembrance_n at_o the_o time_n of_o your_o chief_a devotion_n i_o mean_v at_o the_o time_n of_o celebrate_v that_o most_o dreadful_a sacrifice_n wherein_o our_o saviour_n by_o the_o ministry_n of_o yourselves_o daily_o offer_v up_o his_o own_o sacred_a body_n and_o blood_n to_o his_o heavenly_a father_n for_o the_o expiate_a of_o sin_n in_o man._n and_o with_o this_o i_o give_v you_o all_o my_o last_o farewell_n &_o shall_v ever_o remain_v you_o in_o all_o christian_n and_o religious_a obseruancy_n n._n n._n p._n a_o table_n of_o the_o chief_a controversy_n handle_v in_o this_o book_n a._n a_o diaphorist_n in_o religion_n who_o animad_fw-la 60._o adoration_n of_o saint_n and_o angel_n anim._n 34._o adoration_n of_o the_o holy_a eucharist_n anim._n 166._o albigenses_n &_o waldenses_n what_o they_o be_v animad_fw-la 103._o 104._o angel_n how_o they_o may_v be_v paint_v animad_fw-la 32._o antichrist_n his_o first_o come_v assign_v by_o protestant_n animad_fw-la 35._o the_o pope_n can_v be_v antichrist_n animad_fw-la 153._o the_o antinomi_n heretic_n descend_v from_o luther_n animad_fw-la 148._o article_n of_o cath._n religion_n maintain_v by_o protestant_n animad_fw-la 187._o article_n negative_a ought_v to_o be_v prove_v by_o scripture_n by_o protestant_n animad_fw-la 55._o atheism_n in_o many_o protestant_n of_o england_n animad_fw-la 193._o s._n augustine_n high_o extol_v by_o protestant_n animad_fw-la 162._o the_o author_n vow_n and_o prayer_n for_o the_o king_n &_o queen_n animad_fw-la 191._o cath._n author_n ordinary_o reject_v by_o protestant_n animad_fw-la 3._o 4._o &_o 42._o b._n bead_n their_o use_n and_o antiquity_n anim._n 83._o bless_a virgin_n mary_n her_o virginity_n an._n 47_o her_n free_v from_o original_a sin_n anim._n 183._o her_o assumption_n into_o heaven_n animad_fw-la 183._o a_o body_n may_v be_v in_o two_o place_n at_o once_o animad_fw-la 91._o c._n caluin_n a_o enemy_n to_o the_o divinity_n of_o christ_n &_o the_o b._n trinity_n anim._n 138._o caluins_n exposition_n of_o hoc_fw-la est_fw-la corpus_fw-la meum_fw-la animad_fw-la 49._o carolostadius_fw-la impugn_a the_o mass_n by_o persuasion_n of_o the_o devil_n animad_fw-la 59_o catholic_a religion_n never_o change_v animad_fw-la 79._o 80._o title_n of_o catholic_n and_o antiquity_n thereof_o animad_fw-la 175._o catholics_n or_o protestant_n whether_o incline_v more_o to_o virtue_n animad_fw-la 65._o catholics_n and_o protestant_n can_v be_v both_o save_v animad_fw-la 176._o ceremony_n deride_v by_o protestant_n and_o puritan_n animad_fw-la 63._o about_o the_o ceremony_n of_o the_o mass_n anim._n 16._o the_o church_n definition_n of_o protestant_n animad_fw-la 192._o church_n of_o protestant_n invisible_a animad_fw-la 1922_o christian_a religion_n plant●●_n in_o england_n when_o animad_fw-la 36._o communion_n under_o one_o kind_n animad_fw-la 28.76_o comparison_n between_o the_o life_n of_o catholics_n and_o protestant_n animad_fw-la 188._o conference_n of_o place_n of_o scripture_n anim._n 54._o counsel_n general_n depress_v by_o heretic_n animad_fw-la 50._o the_o creed_n whether_o it_o contain_v all_o article_n necessary_a of_o religion_n animad_fw-la 61._o d._n about_o the_o decalogue_n or_o ten_o commandment_n animad_fw-la 30_o decree_n of_o pope_n fraudulent_o urge_v by_o protestant_n animad_fw-la 38._o 39_o deity_n of_o christ_n deny_v also_o the_o immortality_n of_o the_o soul_n animad_fw-la 194._o difference_n between_o scripture_n and_o father_n animad_fw-la 40._o difference_n between_o protestant_n themselves_o about_o scripture_n animad_fw-la 48._o difference_n between_o preacher_n of_o cathol_n and_o protestant_a doctrine_n animad_fw-la 160._o disputation_n with_o protestant_n how_o to_o order_v animad_fw-la 20._o &_o 41._o dispute_v with_o protestant_n by_o intercourse_n of_o letter_n animad_fw-la 73._o doctor_n and_o pastor_n always_o to_o be_v in_o the_o church_n animad_fw-la 117._o e._n elias_n his_o example_n much_o urge_v by_o protestant_n animad_fw-la 151._o about_o the_o holy_a eucharist_n animad_fw-la 26._o 125._o 126._o 127._o 128._o 129._o 130._o 165._o 166._o the_o eye_n of_o a_o man_n wonderful_a animad_fw-la 196._o f._n fabric_n of_o the_o world_n animad_fw-la 199._o the_o face_n of_o a_o man_n admirable_a anim._n 197._o ancient_a father_n their_o authority_n reject_v ordinary_o by_o protestant_n animad_fw-la 3._o 4._o yet_o loath_a to_o break_v with_o they_o anim._n 42._o 43._o their_o advantage_n for_o interpret_n of_o scripture_n animad_fw-la 41._o their_o maintain_n of_o papistry_n anim._n 66._o the_o doctrine_n of_o freewill_n animad_fw-la 133._o 134._o 135._o 136._o g._n general_a counsel_n depress_v by_o heretic_n animad_fw-la 50._o god_n the_o father_n how_o he_o may_v be_v paint_v animad_fw-la 31._o 32._o 33._o god_n the_o author_n of_o sin_n affirm_v by_o protestant_n animad_fw-la 185._o grace_n what_o concurre_v in_o work_v thereof_o animad_fw-la 164._o grecian_n ever_o emulous_a of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n animad_fw-la 119._o h._n the_o hand_n of_o a_o man_n wonderful_a anim_fw-la 196._o all_o heresy_n arise_v have_v be_v record_v by_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n animad_fw-la 118._o heretic_n first_o denial_n of_o diverse_a point_n of_o cath_z religion_n animad_fw-la 11._o heretic_n call_v after_o the_o name_n of_o their_o first_o author_n animad_fw-la 77._o 78._o heretic_n condemn_v prophet_n apostle_n father_n etc._n etc._n animad_fw-la 140._o their_o charge_n of_o catholics_n with_o the_o error_n of_o the_o heathen_n animad_fw-la 141._o holywater_n and_o its_o antiquity_n animad_fw-la 84._o about_o the_o hymn_n of_o aue_fw-la maris_fw-la stella_fw-la animad_fw-la 46._o i._o the_o jew_n deliver_v many_o article_n of_o catholic_a religion_n before_o christ_n come_v animad_fw-la 98._o jewish_a ceremony_n many_o still_o retain_v animad_fw-la 158._o image_n how_o they_o may_v be_v paint_v anim._n 31._o discuss_v by_o philosophy_n animad_fw-la 33._o jmmortality_n of_o the_o soul_n deny_v and_o defend_v animad_fw-la 194._o about_o the_o doctrine_n of_o jndulgence_n animad_fw-la 171._o 172._o induration_n of_o pharaoh_n his_o hart_n animad_fw-la 150._o invention_n of_o a_o false_a opinion_n may_v be_v perhaps_o of_o no_o heretic_n animad_fw-la 15._o jnuisibility_n of_o the_o protestant_n church_n animad_fw-la 104._o 139._o 180._o justification_n and_o merit_n of_o work_n anim._n 29._o justification_n by_o only_a faith_n animad_fw-la 189._o k._n of_o king_n and_o queen_n excommunicate_v and_o depose_v animad_fw-la 191._o knowledge_n of_o a_o deity_n what_o animad_fw-la 194._o knowledge_n of_o the_o soul_n what_o animad_fw-la 194._o l._n libertine_n descend_v from_o luther_n animad_fw-la 148._o evil_a life_n of_o pope_n object_v by_o protestant_n animad_fw-la 145._o 146._o luther_n exposition_n of_o hoc_fw-la est_fw-la corpus_fw-la meum_fw-la animad_fw-la 49._o luther_n spirit_n be_v a_o catholic_a and_o be_v a_o heretic_n animad_fw-la 57_o luther_n change_n of_o the_o mass_n by_o persuasion_n of_o the_o devil_n animad_fw-la 58._o 59_o luther_n no_o perfect_a and_o entire_a protestant_n animad_fw-la 101._o luther_n doctrine_n why_o applaud_v anim._n 144._o m._n b._n v._o mary_n her_o conception_n immaculate_a animad_fw-la 44._o the_o little_a respect_n protestant_n give_v unto_o unto_o she_o animad_fw-la 45._o less_o give_v to_o she_o by_o puritan_n anim._n 47._o about_o her_o hymn_n of_o aue_fw-la maris_fw-la stella_fw-la animad_fw-la 46._o mark_v of_o the_o protestant_n church_n anim._n 13._o marriage_n of_o priest_n urge_v by_o protestant_n animad_fw-la 154._o mass_n and_o the_o antiquity_n thereof_o anim._n 159._o merit_n of_o work_n animad_fw-la 29._o miracle_n depress_v by_o protestant_n animad_fw-la 70._o n._n necessity_n of_o the_o visibility_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n animad_fw-la 137._o neutral_n in_o religion_n what_o they_o hold_v animad_fw-la 60._o note_n of_o the_o church_n animad_fw-la 108._o 142._o p._n persecution_n of_o catholic_n under_o q._n elizabeth_n anima_fw-la 9_o practise_v in_o controversy_n much_o commend_v animad_fw-la 86._o prayer_n to_o saint_n animad_fw-la 81._o prayer_n in_o a_o strange_a tongue_n animad_fw-la 169._o prayer_n needless_a and_o fruitless_a with_o protestant_n animad_fw-la 186._o protestant_n their_o sleight_n in_o answer_v cath._n book_n animad_fw-la 131._o protestant_n whether_o there_o be_v any_o before_o luther_n animad_fw-la 109._o 110._o protestant_n soon_o become_v atheist_n then_o do_v catholic_n animad_fw-la 109._o what_o require_v to_o a_o perfect_a protestant_n animad_fw-la 102._o protestant_n will_v seem_v to_o agree_v with_o the_o ancient_a father_n animad_fw-la 67._o protestant_n void_a of_o all_o real_a faith_n anim._n 182._o protestant_n and_o jew_n jump_v in_o many_o thing_n animad_fw-la 5._o protestant_n agree_v which_o ancient_a condemn_a heretic_n animad_fw-la 6._o their_o false_a allege_v of_o scripture_n animad_fw-la 52._o protestant_n opposite_a one_o to_o another_o in_o their_o writing_n animad_fw-la 17._o 18._o 19_o protestant_n charge_v with_o a_o vicious_a circle_n in_o their_o dispute_n animad_fw-la 21._o their_o fly_v to_o the_o private_a spirit_n animad_fw-la 22._o &_o 100_o their_o little_a respect_n to_o the_o b._n v._o mary_n animad_fw-la 45._o 46._o protestant_n maintain_v diverse_a article_n of_o the_o cath._n faith_n animad_fw-la 187._o protestant_n charge_v cath._n religion_n with_o teach_v disobedience_n to_o prince_n anim._n 191._o protestant_n rebellion_n in_o france_n holland_n germany_n etc._n etc._n animad_fw-la 191._o protestant_n definition_n of_o their_o church_n animad_fw-la 192._o protestant_n many_o of_o they_o atheist_n animad_fw-la 193._o protestant_n inuective_n one_o against_o another_o animad_fw-la 62._o protestant_n charge_v with_o ancient_a heresy_n by_o catholics_n animad_fw-la 64._o protestant_n pretend_v their_o write_n and_o memory_n to_o have_v be_v extinguish_v by_o the_o pope_n animad_fw-la 68_o protestant_n borrow_v from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n animad_fw-la 94._o all_o protestant_n or_o their_o forefather_n sometime_o catholic_n animad_fw-la 88_o they_o can_v agree_v about_o their_o own_o doctrine_n animad_fw-la 97._o protestancy_n when_o it_o be_v in_o its_o full_a height_n animad_fw-la 177._o puritan_n their_o dishonour_n of_o the_o b._n v._o mary_n animad_fw-la 47._o purgatory_n defend_v animad_fw-la 149._o r._n the_o reall-presence_n discuss_v animad_fw-la 89._o 125._o 126._o 127._o 128._o 129._o 155._o 156._o 163._o reall-presence_n maintain_v by_o protestant_n against_o puritan_n animad_fw-la 7._o their_o argument_n also_o against_o the_o reall-presence_n animad_fw-la 8._o doctrine_n of_o recusancy_n teach_v both_o by_o catholics_n and_o protestant_n animad_fw-la 178._o about_o the_o doctrine_n of_o reprobation_n anim._n 184._o 190._o roman_a religion_n never_o change_v animad_fw-la 10._o roman_a religion_n only_o capable_a of_o salvation_n animad_fw-la 121._o s._n saint_n to_o be_v pray_v unto_o lawful_a animad_fw-la 27._o salvation_n certain_a in_o the_o cath._n roman_n religion_n animad_fw-la 71._o scripture_n how_o to_o be_v interpret_v animad_fw-la 25._o 37._o 152._o difficult_a to_o be_v understand_v animad_fw-la 167._o why_o write_v by_o the_o apostle_n anim._n 170._o about_o the_o sign_n of_o the_o cross_n animad_fw-la 82._o soul_n of_o man_n immortal_a animad_fw-la 194._o the_o similitude_n it_o bear_v to_o god_n anim._n 200_o spirit_n be_v a_o invisible_a substance_n anim._n 198._o t._n tradition_n unwritten_a impugn_a by_o protestant_n animad_fw-la 181._o tradition_n know_v by_o certain_a rule_n animad_fw-la 168._o translation_n of_o the_o scripture_n by_o protestant_n corrupt_v animad_fw-la 173._o 174._o the_o doctrine_n of_o transubstantiation_n anim._n 122._o 123._o 124._o 125._o 126._o 127._o 128._o 129._o 130._o truth_n how_o it_o may_v be_v deliver_v in_o negative_a word_n anim._n 96._o v._o the_o vbiquity_n of_o god_n animad_fw-la 93._o the_o virginity_n of_o our_o b._n lady_n anim._n 47._o her_o freedom_n from_o original_a sin_n anim._n 183._o visibility_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n prove_v by_o the_o jnuisibility_n of_o the_o protestant_a church_n animad_fw-la 111._o 112._o 113._o 114._o 115._o 116._o 180._o visibility_n of_o the_o protestant_n church_n maintain_v by_o they_o animad_fw-la 12._o universality_n a_o strong_a argument_n for_o cath._n religion_n animad_fw-la 157._o the_o voice_n of_o a_o man_n admirable_a anim._n 197._o w._n waldenses_n &_o albigenses_n what_o they_o be_v 〈◊〉_d animad_fw-la 103._o 104._o the_o take_n of_o a_o second_o wife_n often_o a_o abus●_n in_o protestant_n animad_fw-la 179._o word_n of_o god_n write_v animad_fw-la 1._o 2._o 3._o word_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o last_o supper_n how_o to_o b●_n take_v animad_fw-la 23._o 24._o the_o world_n existence_n from_o eternity_n impugn_a animad_fw-la 195._o the_o fabric_n of_o the_o world_n animad_fw-la 199._o z._n zwinglius_fw-la his_fw-la impugn_v the_o mass_n by_o persuasion_n of_o the_o devil_n animad_fw-la 5●_n finis_fw-la
treatise_n upon_o the_o revelation_n p._n 68_o between_o the_o year_n of_o christ_n three_o hundred_o and_o 316._o the_o antichristian_a &_o papistical_a reign_n begin_v reign_v universal_o without_o any_o debatable_a contradiction_n one_o thovand_fw-fr two_o hundred_o and_o sixty_o year_n m._n napper_n practise_v universal_o throughout_o all_o christendom_n almost_o the_o space_n of_o the_o foresay_a fourteen_o hundred_o year_n &_o by_o the_o learnede_a sort_n of_o protestant_n grant_v to_o be_v sufficient_a other_o sufficient_a that_o the_o catholic_a say_v be_v sufficient_a to_o salvation_n be_v confess_v by_o cartwright_n in_o his_o reply_n to_o d._n whitgift_n defence_n pa._n 82._o by_o d._n feild_n of_o the_o church_n l._n 36._o 46._o by_o d._n covell_n in_o his_o defence_n of_o m._n hooker_n p._n 77._o and_o by_o many_o other_o to_o salvation_n be_v punish_v with_o loss_n of_o good_n inprisonment_n and_o often_o loss_n of_o life_n and_o thus_o far_o in_o a_o even_a libration_n of_o the_o law_n by_o which_o sectarye_n be_v punish_v in_o q_n maryes_fw-mi day_n and_o of_o the_o statute_n by_o which_o the_o catholic_n be_v persecute_v in_o q._n elizabeth_n her_o reign_n only_o ●ad_v hereto_o that_o it_o according_a to_o m._n nappers_n confession_n our_o catholic_a religion_n do_v reign_v universal_o from_o the_o year_n of_o christ_n 316._o year_n than_o it_o evident_o follow_v that_o it_o do_v not_o first_o than_o begin_v but_o be_v undoubted_o in_o be_v long_o before_o it_o can_v possible_o become_v so_o confess_o universal_v which_o say_v ti●e_v so_o long_o before_o co●d_v not_o be_v short_a of_o the_o apostle_n time_n animadversion_n x._o diverse_a of_o our_o adversary_n be_v press_v to_o show_v when_o any_o change_n of_o the_o roman_a religion_n come_v in_o as_o a_o innovation_n &_o not_o be_v able_a to_o instance_n in_o any_o one_o dogmatic_a point_v so_o introduce_v the_o more_o easy_o to_o cast_v dust_n in_o the_o eye_n of_o the_o ignorant_a do_v etc._n do_v thus_o answer_v d_o whitaker_n contra_fw-la camp_n rat_n 7._o saying_n pilinon_fw-la subito_fw-la omnes_fw-la canescunt_fw-la and_o again_o in_o e●clesia_n romana_fw-la accidit_fw-la quem●dmodum_fw-la magno_fw-la aedificio_fw-la videmus_fw-la enenire_fw-la quod_fw-la ●●mes_fw-la al●quo_fw-la loco_fw-la incipit_fw-la agere_fw-la etc._n etc._n ita_fw-la romana_fw-la e●clesia_n temporum_fw-la successione_n etc._n etc._n answer_n that_o the_o change_n of_o faith_n in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n unespy_o do_v com●_n in_o even_o as_o hair_n of_o a_o man_n head_n insensible_o do_v grow_v gray_a and_o as_o house_n and_o edifice_n 〈◊〉_d without_o any_o observation_n of_o the_o time_n become_v ruinous_a and_o decay_a &_o yet_o certain_a it_o be_v that_o the_o hair_n change_v their_o former_a colour_n to_o gray_a an●_n that_o house_n become_v ruinous_a to_o examine_v these_o resemblance_n as_o mere_a imposture_n and_o desperate_a evasion_n i_o first_o say_v that_o the_o first_o decay_n in_o building_n &_o the_o first_o show_n of_o whiteness_n in_o hair_n be_v imperceptible_a &_o not_o to_o be_v discern_v whereas_o every_o change_n in_o faith_n though_o but_o in_o one_o point_n or_o article_n be_v most_o markable_a and_o subject_a to_o observation_n second_o the_o whiteness_n of_o the_o hair_n of_o the_o head_n and_o the_o ruin_n of_o a_o house_n do_v not_o happen_v but_o by_o degree_n and_o therefore_o at_o the_o first_o can_v be_v discern_v whereas_o every_o opinion_n in_o doctrine_n be_v at_o the_o first_o either_o true_a or_o false_a and_o therefore_o be_v for_o such_o at_o the_o first_o to_o be_v apprehend_v by_o the_o understanding_n three_o not_o any_o have_v the_o charge_n or_o care_v impose_v upon_o they_o to_o observe_v the_o change_n in_o these_o petty_a matter_n but_o in_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n there_o be_v ever_o appoint_v pastor_n and_o doctor_n who_o office_n be_v to_o mark_v the_o first_o begin_n of_o any_o innovation_n in_o doctrine_n and_o according_o to_o labour_v to_o suppress_v the_o same_o last_o these_o deceytfull_a resemblance_n be_v true_o weigh_v do_v recoil_v back_o with_o disadvantage_n to_o the_o protestant_n for_o although_o we_o can_v show_v when_o the_o first_o hair_n begin_v to_o be_v white_a or_o the_o first_o slifter_n in_o a_o house_n begin_v to_o be_v a_o slifter_n yet_o any_o notable_a degree_n of_o the_o say_a whytnes_n in_o the_o hair_n or_o of_o the_o slifter_n in_o a_o house_n be_v easy_o discern_v and_o therefore_o the_o protestant_n be_v oblige_v even_o from_o the_o nature_n of_o these_o their_o own_o similitude_n to_o tell_v we_o at_o what_o time_n some_o sensible_a degree_n &_o increase_v of_o this_o suppose_a change_n do_v happen_v and_o the_o manifestation_n of_o the_o degree_n be_v to_o be_v make_v by_o name_v the_o time_n &_o the_o person_n when_o and_o by_o who_o such_o or_o such_o a_o particular_a point_n of_o the_o roman_a religion_n be_v first_o sensible_o introduce_v into_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n the_o which_o not_o any_o protestant_n hitherto_o have_v be_v able_a to_o show_v animadversion_n xi_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o in_o the_o ancient_a time_n diverse_a innovatour_n do_v rise_v deny_v this_o or_o that_o catholic_a article_n as_o for_o example_n the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o real_a presence_n be_v first_o deny_v by_o certain_a heretic_n in_o 3_o in_o as_o witness_v theod._n dial._n 3_o ignatius_n his_o day_n which_o ignatius_n be_v scholar_n to_o the_o apostle_n the_o denial_n of_o freewill_n teach_v by_o the_o manichee_n as_o 46._o as_o auctin_fw-fr l._n de_fw-fr haeres_fw-la cap._n 46._o austin_n witness_v and_o therein_o condemn_v they_o the_o like_a may_v be_v say_v of_o more_o than_o twenty_o article_n of_o our_o catholic_a religion_n deny_v by_o the_o ancient_a heretic_n as_o else_o where_o in_o this_o treatise_n be_v show_v now_o from_o hence_o i_o demonstrative_o conclude_v that_o this_o denial_n of_o the_o say_v catholic_a point_n in_o those_o ancient_a time_n do_v necessary_o imply_v that_o the_o say_v catholic_a point_n be_v affirmative_o believe_v general_o teach_v both_o in_o and_o before_o the_o time_n and_o thus_o through_o the_o old_a heret●_n deny_v and_o impugn_v of_o our_o say_a poi●●_n of_o faith_n be_v necessary_o presuppose_v a_o pre●stency_n of_o those_o say_v affirmative_a doctrine_n the_o real_a presence_n freewill_n and_o of_o the_o r●●_n whereof_o those_o ancient_a heretic_n tenet_n be_v m●rely_o negative_n i_o mean_v they_o preadmit_v a_o former_a more_o ancient_a belief_n of_o our_o say_v catholic_a doctrine_n for_o why_o shall_v any_o sectary_n in_o those_o day_n rise_v up_o to_o deny_v a●_n this_o by_o writing_n any_o of_o the_o say_a doctrine_n if_o those_o doctrine_n have_v not_o be_v then_o a●●_n before_o believe_v animadversion_n xii_o such_o frontless_a protestant_n as_o will_v maintain_v the_o visibility_n of_o their_o church_n for_o a_o age_n undertake_v to_o give_v example_n of_o several_a protestant_n in_o such_o age_n do_v common_o use_v this_o height_n and_o imposture_n that_o be_v they_o begin_v to_o instance_n in_o luther_n and_o so_o upward_o to_o waldo_n who_o live_v about_o 400._o year_n since_o and_o then_o they_o arrive_v to_o that_o time_n though_o all_o those_o example_n be_v mere_o false_a and_o impertinent_a shift_v off_o the_o instance_n from_o that_o 400._o year_n to_o the_o apostle_n day_n which_o contain_v above_o twelve_o hundred_o year_n by_o say_v we_o shall_v 1614_o shall_v so_o answer_v the_o author_n of_o a_o treatise_n entitle_v of_o the_o perpetual_a visibility_n and_o succession_n of_o the_o true_a church_n in_o all_o age_n pa._n 89._o print_v anno_o 1614_o not_o need_v to_o ascend_v any_o high_a than_o to_o waldo_n which_o otherwise_o be_v easy_a to_o make_v plain_a thus_o leave_v a_o thousand_o and_o one_o hundred_o year_n without_o give_v any_o one_o example_n of_o protestant_n during_o all_o that_o long_a period_n of_o age_n now_o ●ere_z i_o say_v the_o protestant_n imposture_n be_v this_o to_o begin_v with_o luther_n upward_o and_o not_o downward_o towards_o luther_n thereby_o the_o better_a to_o conceal_v from_o a_o vulgar_a eye_n the_o small_a number_n of_o those_o age_n or_o century_n for_o which_o they_o endeavour_v to_o prove_v the_o imaginary_a visibility_n of_o the_o protestant_a church_n for_o if_o they_o have_v begin_v in_o instance_v with_o waldo_n who_o as_o be_v say_v live_v but_o some_o 400._o year_n since_o then_o every_o simple_a man_n may_v have_v discern_v at_o the_o first_o that_o they_o have_v pass_v over_o eleven_o or_o twelve_o hundred_o year_n at_o the_o least_o to_o wit_n from_o the_o apostle_n day_n to_o waldo_n without_o pretend_v so_o much_o as_o one_o example_n of_o protestancy_n during_o all_o that_o large_a circuit_n of_o time_n and_o so_o may_v have_v just_o challenge_v they_o for_o their_o pretermit_v of_o so_o many_o age_n in_o some_o sort_n answerable_o hereto_o card._n bellarmine_n charge_v
province_n etc._n etc._n have_v the_o bind_n force_n of_o a_o law_n or_o precept_n and_o yet_o the_o same_o custom_n once_o cease_v the_o bond_n of_o all_o authority_n produce_v in_o defence_n of_o the_o say_a custom_n do_v also_o cease_v 3._o three_o in_o the_o allegation_n of_o any_o authority_n for_o communion_n under_o both_o kind_n we_o be_v diligent_o to_o observe_v whether_o the_o same_o make_v mention_n of_o form_n or_o kind_n to_o wit_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n or_o only_o of_o the_o thing_n contain_v under_o the_o say_a kind_n to_o wit_n the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ._n for_o in_o the_o example_n of_o the_o first_o we_o shall_v seldom_o or_o never_o find_v any_o one_o which_o import_v a_o precept_n or_o necessity_n and_o though_o of_o the_o late_a innumerable_a authority_n may_v be_v bring_v yet_o they_o be_v all_o impertinent_a see_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n be_v as_o true_o receive_v under_o either_o kind_n alone_o as_o under_o both_o and_o the_o precept_n in_o that_o case_n determine_v only_o the_o thing_n and_o not_o the_o kind_a 4._o four_o diverse_a authority_n allege_v for_o laical_a communion_n under_o both_o kind_n be_v understand_v only_o of_o spiritual_a not_o sacramental_a receive_v 5._o five_o though_o the_o father_n sometime_o signify_v the_o communion_n to_o be_v most_o complete_a and_o perfect_a when_o it_o be_v administer_v and_o receive_v under_o both_o kind_n in_o regard_n that_o the_o effect_n thereof_o be_v more_o lively_o express_v yet_o this_o perfection_n be_v but_o only_o accidental_a and_o therefore_o from_o hence_o can_v be_v infer_v a_o precept_n or_o necessity_n for_o for_o example_n innumerable_a th●ngs_n there_o be_v which_o accidental_o will_v conduce_v to_o grace_n and_o salvation_n which_o yet_o do_v not_o fall_v under_o any_o bond_n or_o command_n 6._o six_o the_o father_n sometime_o reprove_v such_o as_o abstayn_v from_o the_o chalice_n do_v only_o speak_v against_o the_o manichee_n and_o some_o other_o heretic_n who_o upon_o a_o certain_a superstition_n abhor_a wine_n as_o foolish_o think_v it_o to_o be_v the_o gall_n of_o the_o devil_n as_o s._n austin_n 46._o austin_n austin_n de_fw-fr ●aeres_fw-la cap._n 46._o relate_v and_o withal_o deny_v christ_n our_o saviour_n to_o have_v have_v true_a blood_n which_o nothing_o concern_v this_o our_o catholic_a doctrine_n 7._o seavent_o which_o be_v great_o to_o be_v note_v that_o whereas_o the_o only_a point_n i●_n controversy_n be_v whether_o christ_n our_o saviour_n give_v absolute_a command_n not_o only_o to_o priest_n but_o also_o to_o the_o laity_n to_o receive_v under_o both_o kind_n as_o also_o whether_o the_o primitive_a church_n do_v universal_o for_o time_n &_o place_n and_z as_o matter_n of_o necessity_n observe_v the_o same_o yet_o no_o one_o testimony_n of_o scripture_n or_o doctor_n can_v be_v produce_v either_o express_o or_o by_o necessary_a consequence_n affirm_v the_o same_o 8._o eight_o and_o last_o admit_v any_o authority_n can_v be_v produce_v from_o a_o doctor_n mo●●_n ancient_a and_o learned_a which_o express_o and_o i●_n direct_a term_n shall_v contradict_v our_o catholic_a doctrine_n yet_o the_o same_o with_o any_o ma●_n of_o judgement_n and_o virtue_n can_v bear_v 〈◊〉_d force_n against_o the_o infallible_a decree_n of_o ecumenical_a and_o general_n counsel_n of_o god●_n church_n see_v not_o the_o church_n unto_o th●_n doctor_n but_o the_o doctor_n and_o their_o writing_n ought_v and_o be_v to_o be_v submit_v to_o th●_n church_n and_o this_o observation_n have_v i●_n weight_n and_o force_n in_o many_o other_o point_v 〈◊〉_d controversy_n thus_o far_o touch_v the_o seu●rall_a observation_n concern_v communi●_fw-la under_o both_o or_o one_o kind_n only_o animadversion_n lxxvii_o that_o sentence_n of_o chrysostome_n be_v most_o tru●_n prout_n apost_n prout_n homil_n 33._o in_o act_n apost_n haeresiarchae_fw-la nomen_fw-la ita_fw-la secta_fw-la u●catur_fw-la to_o who_o judgement_n herein_o d._n f●●_v subscribe_v in_o these_o word_n sure_o 9_o sure_o of_o the_o church_n l._n 2._o c._n 9_o it_o be_v 〈◊〉_d ●o_o be_v deny_v but_o that_o the_o name_n after_o the_o name_n of_o man_n be_v in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n peculiar_a and_o proper_a to_o heretic_n and_o schismatic_o which_o sentence_n do_v deadly_a wound_v the_o innovatour_n of_o these_o time_n who_o take_v their_o denomination_n from_o luther_n swinglius_n caluin_n etc._n etc._n and_o so_o for_o distinction_n sake_n they_o be_v term_v lutheran_n swinglian_o caluinist_n etc._n etc._n as_o signify_v thereby_o that_o they_o take_v their_o doctrine_n and_o faith_n from_o those_o particular_a man_n neither_o can_v our_o adversary_n retort_n upon_o we_o this_o argument_n by_o say_v that_o the_o word_n papist_n be_v impose_v upon_o us._n this_o prove_v nothing_o see_v as_o in_o those_o ancient_a heretic_n i_o mean_v the_o arian_n entichians_n manichee_n so_o in_o our_o sectary_n to_o wit_n the_o lutheran_n swinglian_o caluinist_n &c._n &c._n these_o name_n be_v give_v only_o out_o of_o necessity_n &_o to_o distinguish_v their_o doctrine_n from_o all_o other_o doctrine_n but_o now_o the_o name_n papist_n be_v soyn_v but_o late_o by_o luther_n and_o this_o not_o out_o of_o necessity_n but_o of_o reproach_n our_o faith_n ●nd_v doctrine_n be_v acknowledge_v to_o have_v ●eene_v in_o the_o world_n many_o hundred_o year_n before_o luther_n tyme._n again_o the_o word_n papist_n be_v not_o restrain_v to_o any_o one_o pope_n or_o to_o any_o peculiar_a doctrine_n teach_v by_o the_o present_a church_n of_o rome_n but_o it_o be_v indifferent_o extend_v to_o all_o pope_n and_o to_o all_o the_o doctrine_n teach_v by_o the_o say_a pope_n and_o 〈◊〉_d for_o the_o name_n of_o franciscan_n bernardin_n etc._n etc._n in_o the_o catholic_a church_n it_o be_v clear_a that_o these_o name_n be_v not_o impose_v for_o change_v of_o faith_n but_o only_o for_o institution_n of_o several_a degree_n of_o a_o virtuous_a and_o religious_a life_n animadversion_n lxxviii_o in_o any_o notable_a change_n of_o religion_n these_o thing_n follow_v be_v to_o be_v demonstrate_v or_o point_v out_o first_o the_o author_n of_o such_o a_o change_n as_o above_o be_v intimate_v second_o the_o new_a opinion_n or_o doctrine_n three_o the_o time_n in_o which_o this_o new_a doctrine_n be_v broach_v four_o the_o place_n in_o which_o it_o be_v teach_v five_o and_o last_o the_o person_n who_o do_v oppugn_v and_o resist_v this_o new_a doctrine_n at_o its_o first_o appearance_n none_o of_o all_o which_o circumstance_n can_v be_v show_v concern_v our_o catholic_a religion_n since_o the_o time_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n but_o all_o these_o circumstance_n can_v be_v make_v plain_n and_o discover_v in_o the_o protestant_a religion_n therefore_o it_o demonstrative_o follow_v that_o the_o catholic_a religion_n be_v the_o sole_a ancient_a religion_n first_o unchangeable_o proceed_v from_o the_o institution_n of_o our_o saviour_n &_o that_o protestancy_n be_v but_o innovation_n and_o novelty_n as_o but_o late_o receive_v its_o be_v from_o some_o other_o particular_a innovatour_n animadversion_n lxxix_o no_o protestant_a have_v more_o labour_v to_o search_v into_o the_o change_n of_o our_o catholic_a religion_n then_o d._n whitaker_n have_v do_v who_o insi_v in_o diverse_a particular_a catholic_a doctrine_n undertake_v to_o show_v by_o who_o as_o innovation_n they_o be_v first_o bring_v in_o therefore_o i_o will_v touch_v all_o his_o instance_n show_v they_o to_o be_v more_o ancient_a even_o by_o the_o confession_n of_o other_o learned_a protestant's_n then_o the_o person_n or_o time_n to_o who_o they_o be_v ascribe_v by_o the_o say_v d._n whitaker_n only_o for_o great_a brevity_n i_o will_v content_v myself_o with_o one_o only_a acknowledgement_n instead_o of_o many_o of_o one_o learned_a protestant_a in_o each_o example_n to_o begin_v d._n whitaker_n say_v 1._o it_o be_v 480._o be_v d._n whitak_n cont._n duraeum_n l._n 7._o pag._n 480._o manifest_a that_o who_o first_o deliver_v purgatory_n for_o a_o certain_a doctrine_n be_v gregory_n the_o great_a but_o against_o this_o bare_a testimony_n i_o oppose_v the_o acknowledgement_n of_o d._n fu●ke_n thus_o write_v 303._o write_v in_o his_o confutation_n of_o purgatory_n p._n 36●_n &_o pag._n 303._o &_o 303._o tertullian_n austin_n cyprian_n jerome_n all_o more_o ancient_a than_o gregory_n the_o great_a and_o a_o great_a many_o more_o do_v witness_n that_o sacrifice_n for_o the_o dead_a and_o consequent_o the_o doctrine_n of_o purgatory_n be_v the_o tradition_n of_o the_o apostle_n 490._o apostle_n whitak_n contra_fw-la duraeum_n p._n 490._o second_o d._n whitaker_n say_v innocentius_n the_o three_o be_v the_o first_o that_o institute_v auricular_a confession_n for_o necessary_a this_o jnnocentius_fw-la live_v in_o the_o year_n 1200._o to_o free_v this_o pope_n the_o 127_o the_o centurist_n cent._n 3._o c._n 6._o col_fw-fr 127_o centurist_n speak_v of_o the_o ancient_a church_n
usage_n do_v charge_n cyprian_n and_o tertullian_n who_o live_v in_o the_o second_o and_o three_o age_n for_o their_o teach_n private_a confession_n even_o of_o thought_n and_o lesser_a sin_n three_o d._n whitaker_n 480._o whitaker_n d._n whita_n l._n contra_fw-la du●aeum_fw-la pa._n 480._o affirm_v that_o pope_n siricius_n be_v the_o first_o that_o annex_v perpetual_a chastity_n to_o the_o clergy_n man_n or_o minister_n of_o the_o word_n this_o instance_n be_v overthrow_v by_o the_o confession_n of_o kempnitius_n 601._o kempnitius_n kemp_n nit_n in_o exam._n council_n trid._n p._n 50._o &_o 601._o who_o do_v reprehend_v jerome_n epiphanius_n origen_n ambrose_n all_o far_o more_o ancient_a than_o this_o siricius_n for_o their_o impugn_v the_o suppose_a lawfulness_n of_o priest_n marriage_n four_o d._n whit●ker_n say_v qui_fw-la 480._o qui_fw-la d._n whit._fw-la ubi_fw-la supra_fw-la pa._n 480._o transubstantiationem_fw-la primus_fw-la excogitavit_fw-la it_o fuit_fw-la innocentius_n tertius_fw-la in_o concilio_n lateranensi_fw-la who_o first_o invent_v transubstantiation_n be_v innocentius_n the_o three_o in_o the_o council_n of_o lateran_n which_o council_n be_v houlden_v in_o the_o year_n 1215._o but_o i_o take_v this_o objection_n away_o by_o the_o authority_n of_o d._n 628._o d._n jesuitism_n part_n 2._o rat_n 5_o pa._n 628._o humphrey_n as_o else_o where_o i_o have_v show_v who_o write_v that_o gregory_n the_o great_a and_o austin_n both_o which_o live_v a_o thousand_o year_n since_o at_o their_o first_o plantation_n of_o christian_a religion_n here_o in_o england_n to_o use_v the_o doctor_n own_o word_n jnuexerunt_fw-la transubstantiationem_fw-la five_o the_o d._n further_o proceed_v say_v who_o 480._o who_o contra_fw-la duraeum_n l._n 7._o c._n 480._o first_o invent_v to_o say_v that_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n frangitur_fw-la sensibiliter_fw-la tractatur_fw-la &_o dentibus_fw-la atteritur_fw-la be_v nicolaus_n the_o second_o to_o this_o i_o answer_v say_v it_o be_v but_o a_o verbal_a objection_n and_o quarrele_v at_o certain_a phrase_n &_o word_n which_o word_n be_v to_o be_v understand_v in_o a_o sober_a and_o restrain_v construction_n and_o therefore_o we_o find_v the_o like_a phrase_n to_o be_v use_v by_o s._n chrysostome_n far_o more_o ancient_a than_o nicolaus_n the_o second_o saying_n christus_fw-la non_fw-la 45._o non_fw-la chryso_v in_o joan._n homil._n 45._o se_fw-la tantum_fw-la videri_fw-la permittit_fw-la defiderantibus_fw-la sed_fw-la &_o tangi_fw-la &_o manduçari_fw-la &_o dentes_fw-la ●arni_fw-la suae_fw-la infigi_fw-la christ_n do_v not_o only_o permit_v himself_o to_o be_v see_v of_o those_o who_o desire_v to_o see_v he_o but_o also_o to_o be_v touch_v and_o eat_v by_o they_o and_o their_o tooth_n to_o be_v fasten_v in_o his_o flesh_n a_o point_n so_o true_a that_o jacobus_n andraeas_n a_o famous_a protestant_n but_o a_o lutheran_n answer_v this_o very_a objection_n of_o nicolaus_n say_v 275._o say_v andraeat_a in_o confutat_fw-la joannis_n g●inaei_n p._n 274._o 275._o nicolaus_n nihil_fw-la continet_fw-la quod_fw-la in_o scriptis_fw-la orthodoxorum_fw-la patrum_fw-la chrysostomi_n inprimis_fw-la non_fw-la continetur_fw-la six_o d._n whitaker_n 480._o whitaker_n d._n whitak_n ubi_fw-la supra_fw-la pa._n 480._o instance_v in_o pope_n calixtus_n for_o introduce_v the_o fast_a of_o lent_n and_o of_o quatuor_fw-la temporum_fw-la but_o kempnitius_n thus_o write_v hereof_o ambrose_n 8●_n ambrose_n kempnit_fw-la in_o exam._n council_n trid._n part_n 2._o pag._n 8●_n maximus_n taurinensis_n theophilus_n jerome_n and_o other_o do_v affirm_v the_o fast_a of_o lent_n to_o be_v a_o apostolical_a tradition_n and_o thus_o they_o make_v it_o more_o ancient_a by_o the_o confession_n of_o kempnitius_n than_o the_o time_n of_o calixtus_n seaventh_o and_o last_o d._n whitaker_n thus_o write_v boniface_n 480._o boniface_n d._n whita_n ubi_fw-la supra_fw-la pag._n 480._o the_o three_o be_v the_o first_o that_o entitle_v the_o roman_a church_n to_o be_v caput_fw-la omnium_fw-la ecclesiarum_fw-la the_o head_n of_o all_o church_n but_o this_o be_v refute_v by_o d._n whitaker_n himself_o who_o affirm_v that_o 480._o that_o d._n whitak_n ubi_fw-la supra_fw-la pag._n 480._o zozimus_n bonifacius_n and_o celestinus_fw-la do_v challenge_v superiority_n over_o other_o bishop_n by_o forge_v a_o canon_n of_o the_o nicene_n council_n so_o inconstant_a be_v this_o doctor_n in_o his_o instance_n which_o late_a assertion_n of_o his_o touch_v zozimus_n bonifacius_n and_o celestine_n though_o it_o be_v most_o false_a so_o far_o as_o concern_v any_o forge_n of_o a_o canon_n and_o only_o invent_v by_o our_o adversary_n yet_o it_o free_v boniface_n the_o three_o from_o this_o suppose_a innovation_n thus_o far_o now_o of_o d._n whitaker_n instance_n where_o we_o be_v to_o understand_v that_o some_o of_o the_o former_a pope_n do_v command_v a_o more_o strict_a observation_n in_o some_o point_n as_o in_o not_o marry_v of_o priest_n touch_v auricular_a confession_n touch_v the_o fast_a of_o lent_n then_o afore_o be_v observe_v now_o d._n whitaker_n calumny_n here_o lie_v in_o a_o wilful_a confound_v of_o the_o first_o institution_n of_o a_o thing_n with_o a_o renovation_n or_o practice_v of_o the_o same_o thing_n which_o imposture_n be_v above_o note_v animadversion_n lxxx_o i_o will_v here_o draw_v a_o porisma_fw-la or_o resultancy_n out_o of_o this_o last_o animadversion_n it_o be_v this_o whereas_o we_o see_v such_o protestant_a doctor_n and_o those_o of_o the_o great_a rank_n who_o labour_n by_o all_o read_n and_o mean_n whatsoever_o to_o show_v the_o beginning_n of_o our_o catholic_a point_n and_o after_o all_o their_o disquisition_n and_o search_n they_o can_v find_v any_o colour_n or_o pretext_n to_o insist_v in_o more_o than_o five_o or_o sixth_o point_n to_o be_v innovate_v and_o yet_o such_o their_o instance_n evident_o discover_v to_o be_v of_o no_o force_n but_o most_o false_o allege_v therefore_o the_o reader_n may_v here_o just_o presume_v that_o no_o instance_n of_o innovation_n can_v be_v but_o suggest_v or_o imagine_v to_o be_v give_v of_o the_o change_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n touch_v the_o doctrine_n here_o follow_v to_o wit_n 1._o visibility_n of_o the_o church_n 2_o pray_v to_o saint_n 3._o freewill_n 4._o merit_n of_o work_n 5._o work_n of_o supererogation_n 6._o indulgence_n 7._o monachism_n 8._o limbus_n patrum_fw-la 9_o image_n the_o 10._o adoration_n of_o the_o bless_a sacrament_n 11._o communion_n under_o one_o kind_n 12._o universality_n of_o grace_n 13._o the_o necessity_n and_o virtue_n of_o the_o sacrament_n 14._o inherent_a justice_n 15._o the_o knowledge_n of_o christ_n as_o man_n 16._o his_o being_n god_n of_o god_n and_o diverse_a other_o here_o i_o say_v no_o colour_n how_o little_a soever_o can_v be_v give_v of_o innovation_n or_o change_v in_o any_o of_o these_o our_o catholic_a article_n for_o if_o any_o pretext_n or_o shadow_n can_v be_v afford_v of_o any_o change_n of_o these_o or_o of_o any_o other_o doctrine_n here_o not_o specify_v d._n whitaker_n or_o some_o other_o of_o our_o learned_a adversary_n will_v not_o have_v be_v altogether_o silent_a therein_o animadversion_n lxxxi_o the_o catholic_a doctrine_n touch_v praïng_n to_o saint_n be_v chief_o deliver_v in_o these_o ensue_a proposition_n the_o first_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a to_o pray_v to_o saint_n as_o author_n or_o principal_a dispenser_n of_o divine_a benefit_n to_o obtain_v from_o they_o either_o grace_n or_o glory_n or_o the_o mean_n of_o obtain_v eternal_a felicity_n since_o so_o to_o pray_v to_o they_o be_v to_o make_v they_o go_n and_o therefore_o when_o it_o be_v say_v our_o lady_n help_v i_o etc._n etc._n we_o be_v not_o to_o insist_v in_o the_o naked_a word_n but_o in_o the_o sense_n which_o be_v our_o lady_n help_v i_o by_o her_o intercession_n and_o prayer_n to_o her_o son_n no_o otherwise_o then_o s._n paul_n say_v of_o himself_o to_o saluos_fw-la to_o 1._o cor._n 9_o ut_fw-la omnes_fw-la fac●rem_fw-la saluos_fw-la all_o man_n i_o be_o become_v all_o thing_n that_o i_o may_v save_v all_o meaning_n by_o his_o preach_n and_o prayer_n for_o they_o the_o second_o saint_n be_v not_o our_o immedia●●_n mediator_n by_o way_n of_o jntercession_n to_o god_n b●●_n whatsoever_o they_o demand_v or_o obtain_v for_o we_o they_o demand_v and_o obtain_v it_o through_o christ_n and_o his_o merit_n and_o according_a hereto_o we_o find_v tha●_n all_o prayer_n of_o the_o church_n make_v to_o saint_n end_n with_o this_o clause_n per_fw-la christum_fw-la dominu●_fw-la nostrum_fw-la the_o three_o the_o saint_n which_o reign_n with_o god_n do_v pray_v for_o we_o not_o only_o in_o general_n but_o it_o particular_a this_o be_v prove_v from_o those_o word_n in_o jeremy_n if_o moses_n 15._o moses_n jeremy_n c._n 15._o and_o samuel_n tha●_n stand_v before_o i_o my_o soul_n be_v not_o towards_o th●●_n people_n from_o whence_o it_o be_v infer_v that_o moses_n and_o samuel_n then_o be_v dead_a might_n &_o be_v accustom_v to_o pray_v for_o the_o people_n of_o israel_n i_o
our_o adversary_n to_o have_v be_v more_o grievous_a then_o ever_o this_o of_o england_n be_v animadversion_n cx_o whereas_o our_o adversary_n do_v further_o urge_v in_o behalf_n of_o the_o be_v of_o protestant_n in_o former_a age_n that_o it_o be_v often_o observe_v that_o a_o little_a quantity_n of_o copper_n be_v in_o a_o counterfeit_n coin_n of_o gold_n &_o chaff_n be_v mingle_v with_o corn_n and_o yet_o neither_o be_v the_o copper_n gold_n nor_o the_o chaff_n corn_n so_o say_v they_o the_o protestant_a church_n be_v in_o former_a age_n in_o the_o papacy_n the_o papacy_n be_v in_o the_o protestant_a church_n and_o yet_o the_o protestant_a church_n be_v not_o in_o the_o papacy_n according_a hereto_o m._n perkins_n say_v the_o 329._o the_o in_o his_o reform_a catholic_a pag._n 328._o &_o 329._o church_n of_o rome_n may_v be_v say_v to_o be_v in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n &_o the_o church_n of_o god_n in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n with_o who_o agree_v beza_n thus_o write_v voluit_fw-la 15._o voluit_fw-la in_o epist._n theol._n epist_n 1._o pag._n 15._o deus_fw-la in_o papatu_fw-la seruare_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la etsi_fw-la papatus_fw-la non_fw-la est_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la and_o d._n whitaker_n 165._o whitaker_n whi●ak_v l._n de_fw-fr eccles_n pag._n 165._o ecclesia_fw-la vera_fw-la fuit_fw-la in_o papatu_fw-la sed_fw-la papatus_fw-la non_fw-la fuit_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la to_o this_o i_o reply_v and_o say_v it_o be_v but_o a_o froth_n of_o word_n artificial_o put_v together_o howsoever_o many_o of_o our_o adversary_n much_o please_v themselves_o with_o this_o conceit_a answer_n therefore_o for_o the_o better_a examine_v thereof_o we_o be_v here_o to_o conceive_v that_o the_o sense_n and_o meaning_n of_o these_o word_n be_v not_o that_o the_o protestant_a church_n have_v in_o those_o time_n a_o latent_fw-la and_o hidden_a be_v in_o catholic_a country_n without_o have_v intercourse_n &_o communion_n with_o the_o then_o know_v and_o visible_a church_n in_o the_o sacrament_n for_o so_o the_o true_a church_n can_v not_o be_v say_v to_o be_v in_o the_o papacy_n no_o more_o then_o at_o this_o day_n in_o respect_n of_o its_o like_a abode_n in_o turkish_a country_n it_o can_v be_v say_v to_o be_v in_o turkism_n therefore_o the_o particular_a manner_n of_o this_o strange_a mixture_n as_o it_o appear_v in_o show_n of_o word_n be_v thus_o true_o express_v by_o osiander_n the_o protestant_n in_o this_o manner_n 1072._o manner_n in_o epitome_n cent._n 16._o part_n altera_fw-la p._n 1070._o &_o 1072._o quod_fw-la semper_fw-la sub_fw-la papatu_fw-la aliqui_fw-la pij_fw-la homines_fw-la fuerint_fw-la etc._n etc._n no_o man_n deny_v but_o that_o there_o be_v under_o the_o papacy_n some_o holy_a man_n who_o dislike_v the_o error_n of_o the_o pope_n although_o they_o dare_v not_o open_o profess_v so_o much_o nisi_fw-la ardere_fw-la aut_fw-la ad_fw-la minimum_fw-la exulare_fw-la velint_fw-la except_o they_o will_v burn_v for_o their_o religion_n or_o at_o least_o suffer_v banishment_n thus_o we_o see_v the_o last_o sublimate_v sense_n of_o the_o former_a quaint_a sentence_n resolve_v to_o this_o point_n to_o wit_n that_o the_o protestant_a church_n in_o those_o former_a time_n be_v in_o or_o under_o the_o papacy_n do_v through_o fear_n of_o burn_a or_o banishment_n dissemble_v their_o religion_n and_o communicate_v in_o all_o external_a right_n with_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n animadversion_n cxi_o the_o confess_v inuisibility_n of_o the_o protestant_a church_n above_o set_v down_o during_o so_o many_o former_a age_n do_v potential_o and_o virtual_o include_v the_o proof_n of_o the_o visibility_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n during_o all_o the_o say_a age_n see_v the_o jnuisibility_n of_o the_o protestant_a church_n for_o so_o long_a a_o time_n be_v ascribe_v by_o the_o protestant_n themselves_o to_o the_o work_n of_o antichrist_n they_o mean_v thereby_o the_o pope_n and_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n as_o appear_v by_o several_a testimony_n of_o our_o adversary_n else_o where_o in_o this_o treatise_n express_v &_o particular_o of_o m._n napper_n thus_o say_v between_o 68_o between_o napper_n in_o his_o treatise_n upon_o the_o revelat._n pag._n 68_o the_o year_n of_o christ_n 300._o and_o 316._o the_o antichristian_a &_o papistical_a reign_n begin_v reign_v universal_o without_o any_o debatable_a contradiction_n 1260._o year_n and_o according_o the_o centurist_n century_n centurist_n see_v this_o in_o cent._n 4._o and_o so_o successive_o in_o every_o century_n charge_v all_o the_o age_n from_o constantine_n till_o luther_n with_o papistry_n thus_o a_o acknoledged_a defection_n of_o the_o protestant_a church_n for_o many_o centurye_n do_v by_o our_o adversary_n own_o confession_n necessary_o include_v and_o imply_v a_o continual_a visibility_n of_o the_o catholic_a roman_a church_n during_o all_o the_o say_a centurye_n animadversion_n cxii_o touch_v the_o suppose_a change_n of_o the_o faith_n of_o rome_n i_o will_v divide_v in_o these_o three_o next_o animadversion_n all_o the_o age_n from_o the_o apostle_n even_o to_o luther_n day_n into_o three_o several_a station_n or_o period_n of_o time_n first_o then_o we_o will_v see_v how_o long_o it_o be_v grant_v by_o the_o protestant_n that_o rome_n do_v persevere_v without_o any_o alteration_n of_o her_o primitive_a faith_n second_o we_o will_v set_v down_o the_o acknowledge_a continuance_n of_o that_o time_n during_o all_o which_o season_n the_o now_o present_a faith_n of_o rome_n have_v continue_v that_o be_v how_o long_a papistry_n as_o our_o adversary_n term_v it_o have_v be_v public_o profess_v throughout_o all_o christendom_n three_o and_o last_o we_o will_v then_o take_v a_o view_n of_o the_o time_n between_o these_o two_o former_a several_a time_n for_o these_o two_o time_n be_v once_o acknowledge_v on_o all_o side_n to_o wit_n the_o time_n during_o which_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n confess_o keep_v her_o first_o faith_n teach_v by_o the_o apostle_n and_o the_o time_n during_o which_o the_o present_a roman_a faith_n have_v continue_v from_o this_o day_n upward_o it_o inevitable_o follow_v that_o this_o suppose_a change_n in_o religion_n do_v either_o happen_v in_o the_o jnterstitium_fw-la and_o mean_a time_n between_o these_o two_o former_a period_n of_o time_n or_o else_o that_o there_o happen_v no_o such_o change_n of_o religion_n in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n at_o all_o now_o concern_v the_o first_o of_o these_o time_n it_o be_v grant_v by_o the_o protestant_n that_o rome_n retain_v her_o purity_n of_o faith_n without_o any_o alteration_n from_o the_o apostle_n time_n till_o after_o the_o death_n of_o optatus_n epiphanius_n and_o austin_n which_o be_v during_o the_o space_n of_o four_o hundred_o and_o forty_o year_n after_o christ_n this_o i_o thus_o prove_v whereas_o our_o catholic_a writer_n have_v much_o insist_v for_o proof_n of_o their_o religion_n in_o the_o succession_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n even_o until_o augustine_n day_n by_o the_o example_n of_o jrenaus_n cyprian_n optatus_n jerome_n vincentius_n lyrinensis_n and_o austin_n d._n fulke_o answer_v in_o behalf_n of_o these_o father_n in_o this_o sort_n that_o 372._o that_o fulke_o in_o his_o confutation_n of_o purgatory_n p._n 372._o these_o father_n especial_o name_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n it_o be_v because_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n at_o that_o time_n as_o it_o be_v found_v by_o the_o apostle_n so_o it_o continue_v in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o apostle_n which_o doctor_n in_o another_o place_n thus_o further_o write_v the_o 85._o the_o d._n fulke_o in_o his_o retentive_a pag._n 85._o pop●●●_n church_n etc._n etc._n depart_v from_o the_o universal_a church_n of_o christ_n long_o after_o augustine_n departure_n out_o of_o this_o life_n thus_o he_o grant_v that_o till_o after_o augustine_n death_n the_o church_n of_o rome_n remain_v the_o true_a church_n in_o like_a manner_n d._n jewel_n accord_v with_o d._n fulke_o herein_o touch_v the_o argument_n draw_v by_o those_o foresay_a father_n from_o succession_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n say_v as_o 246._o as_o d._n jewel_n in_o his_o reply_n to_o d._n harding_n pag._n 246._o well_o austin_n as_o also_o other_o godly_a father_n right_o yield_v reverence_n to_o the_o sea_n of_o rome_n etc._n etc._n for_o the_o purity_n of_o religion_n which_o be_v there_o preserve_v a_o long_a time_n without_o spot_n to_o conclude_v caluin_n himself_o make_v good_a the_o foresay_a argument_n take_v from_o the_o succession_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n insist_v upon_o by_o jrenaeus_fw-la pertullian_n origen_n cyprian_n austin_n and_o epiphanius_n in_o these_o word_n cum_fw-la 3_o cum_fw-la instit_fw-la l._n 4._o cap._n 2._o sect._n 3_o extra_fw-la controversiam_fw-la erat_fw-la nihil_fw-la á_z principio_fw-la usque_fw-la ad_fw-la aetatem_fw-la illam_fw-la mutatum_fw-la fuisse_fw-la in_o doctrina_fw-la etc._n etc._n see_v it_o be_v a_o point_n out_o of_o controversy_n that_o nothing_o in_o doctrine_n from_o the_o begin_n to_o that_o very_a age_n be_v change_v these_o holy_a
father_n do_v take_v which_o they_o think_v sufficient_a for_o the_o destroy_n of_o all_o new_a error_n to_o wit_n the_o doctrine_n constant_o and_o with_o a_o vanimous_a consent_n retain_v even_o from_o the_o apostle_n day_n till_o their_o time_n thus_o far_o caluin_n and_o so_o far_o now_o concern_v the_o durance_n of_o the_o time_n even_o by_o the_o protestant_n frequent_a confession_n that_o no_o chauge_n of_o faith_n be_v make_v in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n animadversion_n cxiii_o in_o this_o next_o animadversion_n we_o will_v take_v into_o our_o consideration_n the_o number_n of_o those_o age_n during_o the_o length_n of_o all_o which_o from_o this_o day_n upward_o the_o present_a roman_a faith_n have_v by_o the_o like_a confession_n of_o the_o learned_a protestant_n be_v general_o teach_v since_o how_o long_o the_o protestant_n do_v grant_v that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v from_o this_o day_n continue_v in_o her_o present_a faith_n so_o long_v it_o follow_v by_o their_o own_o implicit_a but_o necessary_a censure_n that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n never_o alter_v her_o faith_n now_o this_o point_n appear_v from_o the_o write_n of_o d._n humphrey_n above_o allege_a who_o show_v what_o religion_n austin_n the_o monk_n send_v by_o gregory_n the_o great_a who_o live_v in_o the_o year_n 590_o plant_v in_o england_n thus_o confess_v in_o ecclesiam_fw-la ●27_n ecclesiam_fw-la d._n humphrey_n in_o jesuitism_n ●art_n 2._o rat._n 5._o pag._n ●27_n quid_fw-la invexerunt_fw-la gregorius_n &_o augustinus_n onus_fw-la caeremon●arum_fw-la etc._n etc._n what_o do_v gregory_n and_o austin_n bring_v into_o the_o church_n aburden_v of_o ceremony_n they_o do_v bring_v in_o the_o archiepiscopall_a pall_n for_o the_o solemnisation_n of_o the_o mass_n they_o do_v bring_v in_o purgatory_n etc._n etc._n or_o the_o oblation_n of_o the_o healtfull_a host_n and_o prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a etc._n etc._n relic_n transubstantiation_n etc._n etc._n a_o new_a consecration_n of_o temple_n etc._n etc._n from_o all_o which_o what_o other_o thing_n be_v effect_v than_o the_o introduce_v of_o indulgence_n monachisme_n papism_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o chaos_n of_o popish_a superstition_n all_o this_o do_v austin_n she_o great_a monk_n be_v instruct_v herein_o by_o gregory_n the_o monk_n bring_v unto_o english_a man_n thus_o d._n humphrey_n now_o from_o hence_o it_o appear_v that_o at_o s._n gregory_n his_o send_v of_o austin_n into_o england_n which_o be_v about_o a_o thousand_o year_n since_o our_o present_a roman_a religion_n be_v then_o whole_o and_o public_o practise_v in_o rome_n and_o that_o if_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v suffer_v any_o change_n in_o faith_n from_o that_o first_o teach_v by_o the_o apostle_n that_o this_o change_n shall_v have_v be_v make_v not_o since_o but_o before_o gregorye_n time_n and_o before_o he_o have_v send_v austin_n to_o plant_v in_o england_n the_o faith_n of_o christ_n in_o further_a confirmation_n of_o d._n humfreys_n judgement_n herein_o i_o may_v allege_v the_o centurist_n who_o in_o their_o index_n or_o alphabetical_a table_n of_o the_o sixth_o century_n at_o the_o word_n gregory_n do_v set_v down_o with_o particular_a figure_n of_o reference_n where_o every_o such_o mention_a opinion_n may_v be_v find_v as_o follow_v eiusdem_fw-la error_n de_fw-la bonis_fw-la operi●ut_fw-la de_fw-fr confession_n de_fw-fr coniugio_fw-la de_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la de_fw-la sanctorum_fw-la invocatione_n de_fw-fr inferno_fw-la de_fw-la libero_fw-la arbitrio_fw-la de_fw-fr justificatione_n de_fw-fr purgatorio_fw-la de_fw-la paenitentia_fw-la de_fw-fr satisfactione_n etc._n etc._n brief_o with_o all_o other_o particular_a point_n mantayn_v by_o the_o now_o present_a church_n of_o rome_n the_o less_o wonder_n therefore_o that_o danaeus_n rest_v upon_o his_o own_o false_a principle_n thus_o write_v of_o our_o conversion_n purgatio_fw-la 780._o purgatio_fw-la danaeus_n in_o respon_n ad_fw-la disputat_fw-la bellarm._n part_n r._n pag._n 780._o illa_fw-la quam_fw-la gregorius_n primus_fw-la fecit_fw-la etc._n etc._n suis_fw-la inebriatio_fw-la meretricis_fw-la mundo_fw-la facta_fw-la de_fw-la qua_fw-la est_fw-la apocalyp_n c._n 17._o &_o 18._o thus_o refer_v our_o conversion_n to_o christianity_n to_o the_o work_n of_o antichrist_n now_o from_o these_o former_a acknoledgment_n of_o the_o learned_a protestant_n we_o may_v infallible_o conclude_v that_o from_o this_o day_n till_o we_o arrive_v at_o least_o to_o the_o age_n of_o the_o foresay_a s._n gregory_n who_o live_v about_o a_o thousand_o year_n since_o the_o present_a roman_a and_o catholic_a religion_n be_v teach_v beside_o in_o our_o country_n in_o diverse_a other_o country_n and_o consequent_o see_v those_o country_n do_v receive_v their_o instruction_n in_o faith_n from_o rome_n it_o inavoydable_o follow_v that_o during_o all_o this_o time_n not_o any_o innovation_n or_o change_n in_o faith_n be_v introduce_v into_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n animadversion_n cxiv_o now_o in_o this_o three_o place_n we_o be_v to_o take_v into_o our_o consideration_n the_o number_n of_o year_n which_o pass_v between_o the_o first_o four_o hundred_o and_o forty_o year_n from_o christ_n and_o these_o last_o thousand_o year_n from_o we_o which_o number_n see_v it_o be_v sixteen_o hundred_o year_n and_o more_o from_o christ_n to_o we_o amount_v to_o about_o one_o hundred_o and_o sixty_o year_n well_o then_o if_o here_o we_o can_v prove_v that_o no_o change_n of_o faith_n be_v make_v in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n within_o the_o compass_n of_o this_o 160._o year_n then_o follow_v it_o inavoydable_o that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n never_o to_o this_o day_n have_v suffer_v any_o alteration_n in_o faith_n and_o religion_n since_o it_o first_o embrace_v the_o christian_a faith_n this_o point_n i_o then_o first_o prove_v from_o the_o doctrine_n which_o be_v believe_v and_o general_o teach_v at_o such_o time_n as_o constantine_n who_o be_v our_o first_o christian_a emperor_n be_v convert_v to_o christianity_n which_o be_v about_o the_o year_n three_o hundred_o and_o twenty_o after_o christ_n and_o therefore_o before_o the_o foresay_a one_o hundred_o &_o sixty_o year_n now_o that_o the_o faith_n in_o constantins_n time_n be_v the_o same_o that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n profess_v at_o this_o present_a appear_v from_o the_o frequent_a testimony_n of_o the_o centurist_n who_o most_o elaborate_o and_o punctual_o do_v record_v all_o the_o particular_a article_n of_o the_o present_a roman_a faith_n to_o be_v believe_v most_o constant_o by_o the_o say_v constantine_n and_o by_o the_o age_n wherein_o he_o live_v touch_v the_o faith_n of_o constantine_n and_o that_o age_n the_o centurist_n spend_v several_a column_n of_o the_o four_o century_n to_o wit_n from_o column_n 452._o to_o column_n 497._o and_o d._n whitaker_n affirm_v that_o leo_n who_o be_v pope_n anno_fw-la 440._o be_v a_o great_a ●7_n great_a d._n whitak_n contra_fw-la b●llar_n pag._n ●7_n architect_n of_o the_o antichristian_a kingdom_n now_o from_o all_o this_o i_o necessary_o evict_v that_o no_o change_n of_o the_o faith_n of_o rome_n be_v make_v in_o the_o compass_n of_o the_o say_v one_o hundred_o sixty_o year_n which_o time_n be_v set_v down_o between_o the_o confess_a period_n of_o the_o church_n purity_n and_o the_o acknowledge_v general_a doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n but_o now_o to_o recapitulate_v the_o content_n of_o these_o three_o last_o animadversion_n which_o bear_v a_o necessary_a dependency_n and_o reference_n one_o to_o another_o i_o thus_o make_v my_o deduction_n first_o if_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n remain_v in_o her_o purity_n of_o faith_n without_o any_o change_n for_o the_o first_o four_o hundred_o and_o forty_o year_n second_o if_o it_o be_v confess_v that_o for_o this_o last_o thousand_o year_n the_o church_n of_o rome_n ever_o profess_v the_o same_o faith_n without_o any_o change_n which_o at_o this_o day_n it_o profess_v three_o if_o it_o be_v make_v clear_a that_o during_o the_o interstitium_fw-la of_o time_n between_o the_o first_o 440._o year_n and_o this_o last_o thousand_o year_n which_o be_v but_o 160._o year_n no_o change_n in_o faith_n be_v make_v as_o appear_v from_o the_o faith_n of_o constantine_n our_o first_o christian_a emperor_n and_o the_o father_n of_o that_o age_n what_o demonstration_n more_o certain_a and_o infallible_a then_o that_o the_o present_a church_n of_o rome_n never_o make_v any_o change_n of_o faith_n and_o religion_n since_o the_o apostle_n time_n but_o that_o she_o ever_o preserve_v as_o pure_a and_o incorrupt_a the_o very_a same_o faith_n and_o religion_n which_o s._n peter_n s._n paul_n and_o other_o the_o apostle_n first_o plant_v in_o she_o and_o this_o demonstration_n for_o i_o can_v term_v it_o no_o less_o i_o present_v to_o the_o mature_a and_o diligent_a perusal_n of_o the_o judicious_a reader_n assure_v he_o that_o all_o the_o learned_a protestant_n of_o christendom_n can_v give_v any_o satisfactory_a answer_n thereto_o which_o demonstration_n i_o willing_o acknowledge_v that_o i_o
any_o impugn_a part_n or_o branch_n of_o their_o religion_n from_o which_o undaunted_a resolution_n of_o they_o we_o certain_o collect_v that_o this_o their_o constant_a determination_n of_o defend_v the_o least_o point_n of_o their_o religion_n proceed_v partly_o from_o a_o general_a instinct_n of_o god_n impress_v in_o man_n soul_n teach_v each_o man_n that_o death_n itself_o be_v rather_o to_o be_v suffer_v than_o we_o be_v to_o deny_v any_o part_n of_o faith_n and_o religion_n in_o general_n and_o thus_o according_a hereto_o we_o find_v that_o the_o athenian_n who_o be_v heathen_n though_o they_o do_v err_v touch_v the_o particular_a object_n therein_o as_o worship_v false_a god_n be_v most_o cautelous_a that_o no_o one_o point_n shall_v be_v infringe_v or_o violate_v touch_v the_o worship_v of_o their_o go_n the_o like_a religious_a severity_n be_v practise_v by_o the_o jew_n as_o josephus_n apion_n josephus_n joseph_n contra_fw-la apion_n witness_v now_o from_o these_o premise_n we_o deduce_v against_o our_o adiaphorist_n or_o neutral_n in_o religion_n either_o catholic_a or_o protestant_n that_o no_o point_n of_o true_a religion_n be_v of_o that_o cold_a indifferency_n as_o that_o they_o be_v not_o to_o be_v much_o regard_v either_o in_o belief_n or_o in_o profession_n but_o that_o they_o be_v of_o that_o nature_n worth_n and_o dignity_n as_o a_o man_n be_v oblige_v to_o undergo_v all_o torment_n yea_o death_n itself_o before_o he_o yield_v or_o suffer_v the_o least_o relapse_n in_o deny_v any_o of_o the_o say_a verity_n or_o in_o any_o external_a profession_n contrary_a thereto_o animadversion_n cxxi_o for_o the_o further_a impugn_v of_o the_o indifferency_n of_o several_a religion_n and_o to_o show_v that_o every_o religion_n among_o christian_n be_v not_o capable_a of_o salvation_n i_o will_v draw_v one_o demonstration_n out_o of_o scripture_n the_o text_n be_v this_o in_o the_o 4._o the_o 1._o timoth_n cap._n 4._o lare_a time_n certain_a shall_v depart_v from_o the_o faith_n attend_v to_o spirit_n of_o error_n and_o doctrine_n of_o devil_n forbid_v to_o marry_v &_o to_o abstain_v from_o meat_n here_o the_o apostle_n prophesy_v according_a to_o the_o judgement_n of_o s._n chrysestome_n timoth_n chrysestome_n hom._n 12._o in_o timoth_n ambrose_n locum_fw-la ambrose_n in_o hunc_fw-la locum_fw-la jerome_n 7._o jerome_n l._n contra_fw-la jovinian_a c._n 7._o and_o 40._o and_o haer._n 25._o &_o 40._o austin_n of_o the_o heretic_n encratites_n marcionist_n ebionites_n and_o such_o like_a who_o deny_v matrimony_n as_o a_o thing_n altogether_o unlawful_a and_o prohibit_v absolute_o at_o all_o time_n and_o the_o eat_n of_o certain_a meat_n as_o creature_n impure_a now_o these_o heretic_n believe_v in_o the_o trinity_n the_o incarnation_n and_o other_o supreme_a point_n of_o christian_a religion_n and_o yet_o even_o for_o these_o two_o former_a heresye_n touch_v marriage_n and_o eat_v of_o meat_n and_o not_o for_o their_o misbelief_n in_o the_o trinity_n incarnation_n etc._n etc._n they_o be_v say_v by_o the_o apostle_n to_o depart_v from_o the_o faith_n of_o christ_n and_o to_o attend_v to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o devil_n but_o such_o as_o leave_v the_o faith_n of_o christ_n and_o attend_v to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o devil_n be_v not_o in_o state_n of_o salvation_n now_o these_o error_n here_o mention_v by_o the_o apostle_n be_v of_o as_o little_a or_o lesser_a consequence_n than_o the_o controversye_n between_o the_o catholics_n &_o the_o protestant_n therefore_o it_o stand_v upon_o each_o christian_a if_o so_o he_o expect_v to_o save_v his_o soul_n to_o profess_v entire_o and_o whole_o the_o true_a religion_n animadversion_n cxxii_o touch_v the_o doctrine_n of_o transubstantiation_n in_o the_o b._n sacrament_n of_o the_o eucharist_n the_o ancient_a father_n be_v most_o full_a therein_o even_o by_o the_o acknoledgement_n of_o the_o protestant_n themselves_o first_o then_o gregory_n the_o great_a be_v confess_v by_o d._n humphrey_n 5._o humphrey_n in_o jesuitism_n part_n 2._o rat_n 5._o to_o have_v bring_v in_o transubstantiation_n into_o england_n at_o his_o first_o plant_n of_o christianity_n in_o this_o country_n as_o be_v above_o show_v chrysostome_n be_v reprehend_v by_o the_o centurist_n to_o use_v their_o own_o word_n 517._o word_n cent._n 5._o col_fw-fr 517._o quia_fw-la parum_fw-la commodè_fw-la de_fw-la transubstantiatione_fw-la dixit_fw-la 295._o dixit_fw-la cent._n 4._o c._n 4._o col_fw-fr 295._o s._n ambrose_n be_v affirm_v by_o the_o centurist_n in_o the_o book_n ascribe_v to_o ambrose_n to_o confirm_v the_o doctrine_n of_o transubstantiation_n which_o father_n for_o the_o say_a doctrine_n be_v also_o tax_v by_o 3._o by_o l_o ep._n oecolampad_n &_o swinglij_n l._n 3._o oecolampadius_n s._n cyrill_n be_v reprehend_v by_o peter_n place_n peter_n ep._n ad_fw-la bezam_n annex_v to_o his_o common_a place_n martyr_n in_o these_o word_n i_o will_v not_o easy_o subscribe_v to_o cyrill_v who_o affirm_v such_o a_o communion_n as_o thereby_o even_o the_o flesh_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n be_v join_v to_o the_o blessing_n for_o so_o he_o call_v the_o holy_a bread_n etc._n etc._n s._n cyprian_n be_v charge_v in_o the_o book_n ascribe_v to_o vrsinus_n the_o protestant_n entitle_v co●monefactio_fw-la cuiusdam_fw-la theologi_fw-la de_fw-la sancta_fw-la caen●_n who_o there_o thus_o write_v ●18_n write_v pag._n 111._o &_o ●18_n in_o cyprian_n be_v many_o thing_n which_o seem_v to_o affirm_v transubstantiation_n last_o ignatius_n be_v acknoledge_v by_o ke●pnitius_n 94._o ke●pnitius_n exa_fw-la part_n 1._o p._n 94._o to_o have_v confirm_v the_o doctrine_n of_o transubstantiation_n in_o that_o eminent_a place_n of_o he_o smirnenses_n he_o ep._n ad_fw-la smirnenses_n eucharistias_n &_o oblationes_fw-la non_fw-la admittunt_fw-la quòd_fw-la non_fw-la confiteantur_fw-la eucharistiam_fw-la esse_fw-la carnem_fw-la saluatoris_fw-la quae_fw-la pro_fw-la peccatis_fw-la nostris_fw-la passa_fw-la est_fw-la etc._n etc._n the_o truth_n of_o the_o father_n judgement_n touch_v the_o real_a presence_n be_v so_o full_o confess_v by_o our_o adversary_n as_o that_o antony_n de_fw-fr adamo_n a_o markable_a protestant_n thus_o acknoledge_v hereof_o 236._o hereof_o in_o his_o anatomy_n of_o the_o mass_n p._n 236._o i_o have_v not_o hitherto_o be_v able_a to_o know_v when_o this_o opinion_n of_o the_o real_a &_o bodily_a be_v of_o christ_n in_o the_o eucharist_n do_v first_o begin_v with_o who_o conspire_v adamus_n francisci_fw-la another_o pro_fw-la estant_fw-fr say_n commentum_fw-la 156._o commentum_fw-la in_o margarita_n theol._n pag._n 156._o papistarum_fw-la etc._n etc._n the_o papist_n invention_n touch_v transubstantiation_n creep_v early_o into_o the_o church_n thu●_n far_o of_o the_o protestant_n confession_n in_o this_o point_n whereunto_o we_o may_v add_v that_o these_o father_n here_o above_o charge_v with_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o father_n of_o those_o age_n be_v the_o chief_a pastor_n &_o doctor_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n which_o church_n believe_v herein_o according_a as_o it_o be_v teach_v by_o the_o say_a father_n if_o then_o these_o father_n shall_v err_v in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o transubstantiation_n then_o shall_v it_o follow_v that_o the_o primitive_a church_n yea_o and_o the_o universal_a church_n of_o christ_n contrary_a ●o_o christ_n 1●_n christ_n math_n 1●_n promise_n therein_o shall_v err_v animadversion_n cxxiii_o if_o we_o do_v take_v into_o due_a consideration_n 〈◊〉_d several_a chief_a head_n and_o point_n when_o unto_o the_o sentence_n and_o authority_n of_o 〈◊〉_d ancient_a father_n touch_v the_o eucharist_n 〈◊〉_d be_v reduce_v we_o can_v otherwise_o be_v pervade_v but_o that_o the_o father_n teach_v unanimous_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o real_a presence_n and_o transubstantiation_n see_v those_o head_n 〈◊〉_d the_o father_n sentence_n be_v so_o agreeable_a a●●fortable_a to_o christ_n real_a be_v in_o the_o sacrament_n and_o so_o incompetent_a and_o disproportionable_a to_o a_o bare_a typical_a presence_n or_o be_v of_o he_o therein_o to_o begin_v then_o the_o first_o head_n of_o the_o father_n authoritye_n may_v be_v the_o appellat●●_n or_o name_n which_o the_o father_n give_v to_o the_o bless_a sacrament_n far_o different_o from_o the_o sacramentarye_n which_o be_v a_o argument_n that_o sacramentarye_n differ_v from_o the_o father_n i●_n belief_n therein_o thus_o the_o father_n call_v the_o sacrament_n the_o body_n &_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n th●_n precious_a body_n tremenda_fw-la mysteria_fw-la the_o fearful_a mystery_n the_o pledge_n of_o our_o salvation_n our_o pri●●_n whereas_o the_o sacramentarye_n usual_a phrase_n be_v to_o call_v the_o eucharist_n the_o symbol_n or_o sign●_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o the_o lord_n the_o second_o class_n or_o head_n be_v take_v from_o the_o comparison_n of_o this_o sacrament_n with_o other_o thing_n for_o they_o compare_v it_o with_o the_o manna_n paschall_n lamb_n with_o panis_n propositionis_fw-la and_o the_o like_a say_v the_o eucharist_n do_v differ_v from_o all_o these_o thing_n as_o the_o truth_n differ_v from_o ●●gures_n the_o body_n
from_o a_o shadow_n a_o celestial_a divine_a and_o inconsumptible_a thing_n from_o a_o terrene_a and_o consumptible_a they_o in_o like_a manner_n compare_v the_o eucharist_n with_o the_o mysterye_n of_o the_o incarnation_n they_o compare_v christ_n as_o he_o be_v upon_o the_o altar_n in_o the_o eucharist_n with_o christ_n as_o he_o be_v in_o the_o crib_n or_o manger_n they_o in_o like_a manner_n compare_v christ_n in_o the_o eucharist_n with_o angel_n appear_v in_o corporal_a form_n final_o they_o compare_v those_o man_n who_o unworthy_o do_v handle_v or_o receive_v the_o eucharist_n with_o those_o man_n who_o kill_v christ._n the_o th●rd_n be_v take_v from_o the_o change_n of_o bread_n which_o mutation_n the_o father_n several_a way_n prove_v to_o be_v real_a first_o they_o say_v the_o bread_n do_v not_o remain_v after_o consecration_n second_o that_o the_o sense_n be_v deceive_v herein_o three_o they_o compare_v the_o change_n here_o make_v with_o the_o real_a mutation_n of_o water_n into_o wine_n and_o of_o the_o wand_n of_o moses_n into_o serpent_n four_o the_o father_n affirm_v that_o the_o omnipotency_n of_o god_n be_v necessary_o require_v to_o perform_v this_o mutation_n the_o four_o head_n be_v take_v from_o the_o most_o high_a mystery_n which_o the_o father_n do_v acknowledge_v to_o be_v in_o the_o eucharist_n for_o first_o they_o say_v it_o can_v be_v apprehend_v without_o faith_n second_o they_o do_v exhort_v christian_n to_o a_o infallible_a constancy_n in_o belief_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o this_o mystery_n three_o they_o teach_v that_o the_o miracle_n therein_o exceed_v man_n capacity_n and_o apprehension_n four_o the_o father_n do_v forbear_v in_o reverence_n thereof_o to_o speak_v of_o the_o eucharist_n before_o heathen_n or_o those_o which_o be_v only_o catechumeni_fw-la except_o covert_o in_o these_o word_n norunt_fw-la fideles_fw-la five_o they_o b●ing_v demand_v how_o the_o mystery_n of_o the_o eucharist_n can_v be_v perform_v their_o answer_n be_v to_o refer_v it_o to_o the_o omnipotency_n of_o god_n the_o five_o branch_n be_v take_v from_o the_o veneration_n and_o worship_n give_v to_o the_o eucharist_n for_o first_o they_o do_v adore_v the_o eucharist_n second_o they_o do_v jnnoke_n it_n or_o do_v say_v that_o it_o be_v to_o be_v invoke_v three_o they_o be_v most_o cautelous_a that_o no_o part_n thereof_o shall_v fall_v upon_o the_o earth_n four_o they_o will_v not_o suffer_v it_o to_o be_v see_v of_o heathen_n or_o catechumeni_fw-la five_o they_o aver_v that_o angel_n do_v stand_v near_o unto_o the_o altar_n whilst_o this_o sacrifice_n be_v perform_v yea_o chrysostome_n plain_o say_v that_o angel_n do_v stand_v in_o the_o presence_n of_o the_o eucharist_n capite_fw-la inclinato_fw-la with_o bow_v down_o their_o head_n the_o sixth_o class_n be_v take_v from_o the_o effect_n which_o the_o father_n ascribe_v to_o the_o eucharist_n for_o first_o they_o teach_v that_o by_o it_o we_o be_v corporal_o unite_v with_o christ._n second_o they_o affirm_v that_o our_o body_n be_v to_o suffer_v resurrection_n because_o they_o be_v unite_v with_o the_o body_n of_o christ._n three_o chrysostome_n say_v that_o christ_n do_v give_v himself_o in_o the_o eucharist_n that_o we_o may_v have_v he_o true_o within_o our_o self_n even_o as_o man_n do_v covet_v yet_o can_v give_v themselves_o to_o those_o who_o they_o love_v four_o the_o father_n say_v that_o when_o we_o receive_v christ_n in_o the_o eucharist_n christ_n be_v join_v with_o we_o not_o only_o by_o faith_n and_o charity_n but_o also_o reipsa_fw-la in_o very_a deed_n five_o they_o teach_v that_o by_o the_o perception_n or_o receive_n of_o this_o sacrament_n we_o be_v make_v consortes_n divinae_fw-la naturae_fw-la partaker_n of_o the_o divine_a nature_n now_o if_o the_o reader_n do_v desire_n to_o see_v the_o father_n in_o particular_a who_o affirm_v such_o and_o such_o point_n set_v down_o in_o this_o animadversion_n i_o refer_v he_o to_o the_o 39_o chapter_n of_o the_o second_o book_n de_fw-fr eucharistia_n in_o bellarmine_n from_o which_o place_n i_o do_v acknowledge_v i_o have_v take_v this_o animadversion_n now_o what_o can_v be_v reply_v against_o the_o father_n sentence_n herein_o it_o can_v be_v say_v that_o they_o deliver_v these_o encomia_fw-la and_o laud_n of_o the_o bless_a sacrament_n by_o way_n of_o rhetorical_a amplification_n exaggeration_n or_o hyperbolical_a speech_n first_o because_o not_o any_o one_o father_n among_o so_o many_o do_v but_o intimate_v any_o such_o manner_n of_o write_v in_o their_o work_n second_o in_o that_o some_o of_o they_o do_v write_v to_o the_o contrary_a affirm_v that_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o word_n touch_v the_o b._n sacrament_n be_v literal_o to_o be_v take_v as_o they_o be_v write_v for_o thus_o do_v hilarius_n by_o way_n of_o prevention_n touch_v the_o father_n meaning_n write_v hereof_o non_fw-la est_fw-la trinitate_fw-la est_fw-la hilarius_n cap._n 8._o de_fw-la trinitate_fw-la humano_fw-la aut_fw-la saeculi_fw-la sensu_fw-la in_o dei_fw-la rebus_fw-la loquendum_fw-la neque_fw-la per_fw-la violentam_fw-la &_o impudentem_fw-la praedicationem_fw-la caelestium_fw-la dictorum_fw-la sanitati_fw-la alienae_n atqus_fw-la impiae_fw-la intelligentiae_fw-la extorquenda_fw-la perversitas_fw-la est_fw-la quae_fw-la scripta_fw-la sunt_fw-la legamus_fw-la &_o quae_fw-la legion_n intelligamus_fw-la &_o tunc_fw-la perfectae_fw-la fidei_fw-la officio_fw-la fungemur_fw-la de_fw-la naturali_fw-la enim_fw-la in_o nobis_fw-la christi_fw-la veritate_fw-la quae_fw-la dicimus_fw-la nisi_fw-la ab_fw-la eo_fw-la discimus_fw-la stultè_fw-la atque_fw-la impiè_fw-la dicimus_fw-la ipse_fw-la enim_fw-la ait_fw-la caro_fw-la mea_fw-la verè_fw-la est_fw-la esca_fw-la etc._n etc._n and_o thus_o much_o touch_v this_o father_n censure_v of_o his_o own_o writing_n and_o of_o other_o father_n also_o concern_v the_o bless_a sacrament_n and_o that_o the_o sentence_n deliver_v of_o it_o aught_o to_o be_v take_v literal_o and_o plain_o and_o not_o hyperbolical_o or_o figurative_o and_o as_o amplification_n animadversion_n cxxiv_o as_o above_o be_v show_v that_o the_o ancient_a father_n even_o by_o the_o confession_n of_o the_o protestant_n teach_v the_o doctrine_n of_o transubstantiation_n in_o the_o eucharist_n so_o also_o in_o this_o animadversion_n i_o hold_v it_o convenient_a to_o discover_v the_o like_a judgement_n of_o the_o father_n that_o the_o eucharist_n be_v a_o true_a and_o real_a sacrifice_n offer_v up_o to_o god_n and_o this_o from_o the_o penn_n of_o our_o adversary_n first_o they_o symmachus_n be_v bishop_n of_o rome_n of_o who_o the_o centurist_n thus_o write_v 664._o write_v cent._n 6_o cap._n 10._o col_fw-fr 664._o notas_fw-la antichristi_fw-la etc._n etc._n ●ymmachus_fw-la have_v the_o note_n of_o antichrist_n for_o he_o bring_v the_o mass_n into_o a_o form_n of_o ambrose_n the_o certurist_n thus_o confess_v 295._o confess_v cent._n 4._o c._n 4._o col_fw-fr 295._o ambrose_n locutionibus_fw-la utitur_fw-la quibus_fw-la ante_fw-la cum_fw-la ex_fw-la patri●us_fw-la nemo_fw-la usus_fw-la est_fw-la ut_fw-la missam_fw-la facere_fw-la offer_n sacrificium_fw-la ambrose_n do_v use_v certain_a speech_n the_o which_o no_o other_o father_n before_o he_o do_v use_v as_o to_o say_v mass_n to_o offer_v up_o sacrifice_n etc._n etc._n the_o council_n of_o carthage_n whereat_o s._n austin_n be_v present_a be_v in_o these_o word_n depress_v by_o pelargus_n a_o protestant_n 13._o protestant_n in_o his_o scho●la_fw-la fidei_fw-la tract_n de_fw-fr council_n pag._n 13._o haec_fw-la synodus_fw-la carthaginensis_n intercessionem_fw-la &_o missan_n pro_fw-la defuuctis_fw-la iniunxit_fw-la this_o synod_n of_o carthage_n ●id_v ordain_v intercession_n of_o prayer_n and_o mass_n for_o the_o dead_a cyrill_n of_o jerusalem_n be_v thus_o tax_v by_o hospi●ian_n the_o protestant_n 167._o protestant_n hospinian_n hist_o sacrament_n pag._n 167._o quoad_fw-la cyrilium_fw-la hicrosolymitanum_n attinet_fw-la etc._n etc._n cyrill_n of_o jerusalem_n say_v indeed_o according_a to_o the_o use_n of_o his_o time_n that_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o altar_n be_v a_o great_a help_n to_o soul_n gregory_n nyssene_n be_v thus_o charge_v by_o crasto●ius_n a_o protes●ant_n nyssenus_n 164._o nyssenus_n l._n de_fw-fr opificio_fw-la missae_fw-la 164._o ille_fw-la ait_fw-la cùm_fw-la ●ederit_fw-la christus_fw-la discipulis_fw-la suis_fw-la corpus_fw-la suum_fw-la ad_fw-la comedendum_fw-la etc._n etc._n tam_fw-la latenter_fw-la &_o in●ffa●●●●ter_n &_o invisibiliter_fw-la corpus_fw-la immolatum_fw-la erat_fw-la etc._n etc._n when_o christ_n give_v to_o his_o disciple_n his_o body_n to_o ●●te_v etc._n etc._n that_o then_o his_o body_n be_v immolate_a and_o offer_v up_o latent_o ineffable_o and_o invisible_o cyprian_a who_o live_v a_o 240._o the_o centurist_n do_v thus_o reprehend_v sacerdotem_fw-la 33._o sacerdotem_fw-la cent._n 3._o c._n 4._o col_fw-fr 33._o cyprianus_n inquit_fw-la vice_fw-la christi_fw-la fungi_fw-la &_o deo_fw-la patri_fw-la sacrificium_fw-la offerri_fw-la and_o from_o hence_o they_o charge_v cyprian_a with_o s._n with_o centurist_n in_o the_o alphabetical_a table_n of_o the_o three_o century_n under_o the_o letter_n s._n superstition_n tertullian_n who_o live_v anno_o 220._o osiander_n thus_o accuse_v
church_n in_o the_o time_n of_o boniface_n th●_n third_n which_o be_v anno_o 607._o be_v invisible_a &_o flee_v into_o wilderness_n there_o to_o remain_v a_o long_a season_n now_o to_o reduce_v all_o these_o confession●_n into_o a_o argument_n thus_o than_o i_o dispute_v d._n humphrey_n m._n hooker_n and_o diverse_a other_o here_o omit_v do_v general_o teach_v that_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n must_v necessary_o ever_o be_v visible_a but_o d._n fulke_o m._n napper_n and_o many_o other_o protestant_n for_o brevity_n here_o pass_v ove_z r●●_n ingenuous_o confess_v that_o the_o protestant_a church_n have_v for_o many_o age_n be_v whole_o invisible_a therefore_o even_o in_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o protestant_n themselves_o the_o protestant_a church_n be_v not_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n this_o kind_n of_o argue_v in_o many_o other_o question_n may_v become_v familiar_a to_o he_o who_o be_v conversant_a in_o the_o protestant's_n book_n or_o in_o that_o catholic_a book_n call_v the_o protestant_n apology_n wherein_o a_o man_n may_v see_v even_o thousand_o of_o protestant_n confession_n against_o themselves_o now_o to_o this_o i_o annex_v this_o follow_n that_o whereas_o the_o scripture_n teach_v the_o necessary_a visibility_n of_o the_o true_a church_n of_o god_n as_o also_o whereas_o diverse_a learned_a protestant_n do_v true_o acknowledge_v that_o the_o protestant_a church_n have_v for_o many_o age_n be_v whole_o invisible_a therefore_o diverse_a other_o learned_a protestant_n through_o their_o inveterate_a malice_n to_o our_o catholic_a religion_n and_o as_o confess_v the_o prediction_n in_o scripture_n of_o the_o ever_o visibility_n and_o enlargement_n of_o the_o true_a church_n of_o god_n not_o to_o have_v be_v accomplish_v in_o the_o protestant_n church_n have_v flat_o renounce_v their_o christianity_n charge_v christ_n our_o saviour_n as_o a_o seducer_n themselves_o so_o become_v jew_n and_o turk_n i_o will_v exemplify_v this_o point_n to_o omit_v some_o other_o in_o these_o man_n follow_v all_o before_o their_o apostasy_n most_o eminent_a protestant_n first_o then_o david_n basill_n david_n see_v the_o hi●_n ory_n of_o david_n george_n print_v at_o antwerp_n 1568._o publish_v by_o the_o divines_n of_o basill_n george_n once_o professor_n at_o basill_n become_v a_o blasphemous_a apostata_fw-la ochinus_n elohim_n ochinus_n of_o ochinus_n his_o apostasy_n zanchius_n witness_v in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr tribus_fw-la elohim_n who_o with_o peter_n martyr_n first_o plance_v protestancy_n in_o england_n in_o like_a sort_n deny_v christ_n and_o teach_v circumcision_n as_o zanchius_n the_o protestant_n confess_v 8●8_n confess_v of_o neuserus_fw-la his_o denial_n of_o christ_n osiander_n the_o protestant_n witness_v cent._n 16._o part_n 2._o pag._n 8●8_n neuserus_fw-la once_o superintendent_n of_o heidelberg_n turn_v turk_n an●_n be_v circumcise_v at_o constantinople_n as_o osiander_n the_o protestant_n affirm_v 308._o affirm_v touch_v alamannus_n see_v beza_n in_o e●ist_n 65._o pag._n 308._o alama●nus_n a_o swinglian_a and_o once_o dear_a to_o beza_n become_v a_o jew_n as_o beza_n himself_o say_v laeli●_n extant_a laeli●_n the_o book_n of_o laelius_n socinus_n against_o the_o trinity_n be_v yet_o extant_a socinus_n a_o scholar_n in_o the_o school_n of_o geneva_n do_v write_v whole_a book_n against_o the_o b._n trinity_n final_o to_o omit_v many_o other_o eminent_a protestant_n georgius_n 38._o georgius_n that_o georgius_n paulus_n deny_v the_o trinity_n with_o the_o turk_n be_v witness_v by_o stancarus_n the_o protest_v lib._n de_fw-fr mediate_v fol._n 38._o paul_n minister_n of_o cracovia_n deny_v the_o trinity_n with_o the_o turk_n thus_o of_o instance_n for_o th●_n point_n animadversion_n xviii_o a_o man_n can_v avoid_v the_o force_n of_o the_o former_a kind_n of_o dispute_n consist_v 〈◊〉_d the_o confession_n of_o the_o protestant_n by_o reply_v that_o other_o learned_a protestant_n d●_n maintain_v the_o contrary_a in_o the_o same_o poin●_n to_o the_o protestant's_n above_o by_o i_o allege_v this_o answer_n be_v most_o weak_a th●_n reason_n thereof_o be_v in_o that_o there_o be_v grea●_n disparity_n between_o learned_a protestant_n confess_v some_o point_n which_o do_v advantage_n the_o catholic_a faith_n and_o other_o though_o as_o learn_v protestant_n maintain_v th●_n contrary_a see_v the_o first_o sort_n of_o man_n speak_v against_o themselves_o and_o their_o cause_n who_o be_v judicious_a and_o learned_a man_n will_v never_o do_v but_o as_o be_v convince_v with_o the_o euidency_n of_o the_o truth_n therein_o whereas_o the●●_n second_o kind_n of_o man_n do_v not_o admit_v the_o confession_n of_o their_o brethren_n but_o speak_v only_o in_o behalf_n of_o their_o own_o religion_n and_o so_o such_o their_o denial_n be_v to_o be_v repute_v more_o partial_a and_o this_o animadversion_n be_v to_o be_v remember_v in_o many_o other_o point_n confess_v by_o some_o protestant_n and_o deny_v by_o other_o protestant_n now_o of_o what_o force_n the_o argument_n from_o the_o authority_n or_o confession_n of_o ●n_a adversary_n be_v appear_v both_o from_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o ancient_a father_n and_o the_o protestant_n themselves_o first_o then_o irenaeus_n thus_o write_v hereof_o it_o be_v 14._o be_v l._n 4._o c._n 14._o a_o unanswerable_a proof_n which_o bring_v attestation_n from_o the_o adversary_n themselves_o with_o who_o conspire_v nazianzene_n say_v it_o basil_n it_o orat._n de_fw-fr s._n basil_n be_v the_o great_a cunning_a and_o wisdom_n of_o speech_n to_o bind_v the_o adversary_n with_o his_o own_o word_n now_o touch_v the_o protestant_n acknowledge_v the_o same_o we_o find_v osiander_n the_o protestant_n thus_o to_o write_v the_o eucharist_n the_o in_o ep._n eucharist_n confession_n &_o testimony_n of_o a_o adversary_n be_v of_o great_a authority_n and_o peter_n martyr_n among_o 300._o among_o loc._n tit_n ce_fw-fr judaeis_n fol._n 300._o other_o testimony_n that_o be_v of_o the_o great_a weight_n which_o be_v give_v by_o the_o enemy_n final_o d._n whitaker_n the_o 5._o the_o contra_fw-la bellar_n l._n de_fw-fr eccles_n controu_fw-fr 2._o q_o 5._o argument_n ●ust_z needs_o be_v strong_a and_o effication_n which_o be_v ●●ken_v from_o the_o confession_n of_o the_o adversary_n and_o i_o do_v free_o acknowledge_v that_o truth_n itself_o be_v able_a to_o extort_v testimony_n even_o from_o its_o enemy_n thus_o much_o hereof_o therefore_o i_o here_o only_o conclude_v that_o as_o a_o testimony_n of_o a_o friend_n against_o a_o friend_n so_o of_o a_o adversary_n in_o behalf_n of_o a_o adversary_n be_v of_o great_a force_n and_o most_o convince_a so_o certain_a be_v those_o word_n of_o tertullian_n apolog._n tertullian_n in_o apolog._n magis_fw-la fides_fw-la prona_fw-la est_fw-la in_o adversus_fw-la semetipsos_fw-la confitentes_fw-la quam_fw-la pro_fw-la semetips●_n negantes_fw-la animadversion_n xix_o there_o be_v great_a difference_n to_o be_v make_v between_o protestant_n speak_v against_o themselves_o and_o yet_o believe_v the_o protestant_a doctrine_n and_o conclusion_n touch_v some_o circumstance_n whereof_o the_o confession_n be_v &_o between_o some_o other_o who_o afore_o be_v catholik_o and_o after_o do_v defend_v some_o one_o or_o other_o point_n of_o protestancy_n since_o their_o late_a man_n do_v not_o speak_v against_o themselves_o but_o in_o defence_n of_o some_o such_o protestant_a doctrine_n then_o new_o entertain_v by_o they_o and_o consequent_o in_o defence_n of_o their_o ow_v opinion_n and_o therefore_o such_o their_o authority_n be_v not_o to_o balance_v equal_o with_o the_o confession_n of_o the_o former_a protestant_n th●●_n animadversion_n be_v give_v with_o reference_n to_o erasmus_n cassander_n cornelius_n agrippa_n polide●virgill_n nilus_n and_o some_o other_o every_o on●_n of_o which_o embrace_v some_o one_o protestant_a tenet_n or_o other_o though_o diverse_a of_o they_o after_o reconcile_v themselves_o before_o their_o deat●_n to_o the_o catholic_a church_n by_o abandon_v their_o former_a receive_v innovation_n animadversion_n xx._n choose_v rather_o to_o dispute_v with_o a_o protestant_a touch_v matter_n of_o fact_n in_o whic●_n may_v be_v prove_v the_o falsehood_n of_o the_o protestant_a religion_n then_o touch_v any_o dogmatic_a point_n of_o faith_n or_o doctrine_n as_o receive_v its_o proof_n from_o the_o scripture_n this_o i_o speak_v not_o but_o that_o the_o scripture_n make_v most_o clear_o for_o the_o catholics_n &_o against_o the_o protestant_n but_o because_o your_o adversary_n in_o dispute_n will_v ever_o cavil_v at_o your_o exposition_n of_o scripture_n reduce_v it_o in_o the_o end_n against_o all_o antiquity_n of_o the_o father_n and_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n to_o the_o interpretation_n of_o his_o own_o private_a and_o reveal_v spirit_n now_o in_o matter_n of_o fact_n your_o adversary_n be_v force_v to_o stand_v to_o the_o authority_n deduce_v from_o ecclesiastical_a history_n and_o other_o humane_a proof_n and_o therefore_o he_o must_v either_o shape_v a_o probable_a if_o not_o a_o sufficient_a answer_v to_o they_o which_o he_o can_v do_v they_o whole_o make_v against_o he_o even_o
austin_n do_v teach_v in_o england_n all_o the_o supreme_a point_n which_o the_o roman_a church_n at_o this_o day_n teach_v now_o from_o all_o this_o i_o infer_v that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n in_o augustine_n time_n teach_v papistry_n as_o our_o adversary_n style_v it_o be_v holy_a agreeable_a the_o two_o former_a point_n of_o ●●eping_a easter_n day_n and_o baptise_v with_o the_o ●●tes_n of_o rome_n only_o except_v with_o the_o faith_n and_o religion_n which_o be_v plant_v among_o the_o britan_n by_o joseph_n of_o arimathia_n in_o the_o apostle_n day_n for_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o if_o the_o britan_n have_v not_o yield_v their_o full_a consent_n to_o those_o supreme_a point_n of_o our_o catholic_a religion_n mention_v above_o by_o d._n humphrey_n s._n bede_n will_v have_v be_v most_o ready_a to_o record_v their_o stiffness_n and_o reluctation_n therein_o see_v he_o do_v not_o omit_v to_o relate_v their_o coldness_n only_o in_o the_o two_o former_a point_n of_o ceremony_n so_o certain_a it_o be_v that_o s._n bede_n have_v just_a reason_n to_o conclude_v this_o passage_n with_o these_o word_n 2._o word_n bed_n l._n 2._o c._n 2._o brieones_n quidem_fw-la confitentur_fw-la intellexisse_fw-la se_fw-la veram_fw-la esse_fw-la viam_fw-la justitiae_fw-la quam_fw-la praedicaret_fw-la augustinus_n and_o therefore_o not_o without_o evident_a cause_n d._n fulke_o affirm_v that_o 335._o that_o in_o his_o confuta●tion_n of_o purgatory_n pa._n 335._o austin_n do_v obtain_v the_o aid_n of_o the_o britain_n bishop_n to_o the_o conversion_n of_o the_o saxon_n thus_o far_o of_o this_o argument_n in_o unfould_v whereof_o i_o have_v be_v more_o long_o in_o that_o it_o be_v a_o unswerable_a and_o most_o convince_a demonstation_n in_o proof_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o our_o catholic_a religion_n animadversion_n xxxvii_o it_o be_v a_o dissolute_a kind_n of_o argue_v thus_o to_o conclude_v in_o such_o or_o such_o text_n of_o scripture_n it_o be_v certain_a that_o one_o parcel_n of_o the_o say_a text_n be_v to_o be_v take_v figurative_o ergo_fw-la all_o that_o text_n or_o sentence_n be_v to_o be_v take_v figurative_o for_o example_n we_o catholics_n do_v urge_v those_o word_n in_o our_o warrant_n to_o bow_v at_o the_o name_n of_o jesus_n ut_fw-la 2._o ut_fw-la phil._n 2._o in_o nomine_fw-la jesu_fw-la omne_fw-la genus_fw-la flectatur_fw-la caelestium_fw-la terrestrium_fw-la &_o jnfernorum_n that_o in_o the_o name_n of_o jesus_n every_o knee_n bow_n of_o thing_n in_o heaven_n thing_n in_o earth_n and_o thing_n under_o the_o earth_n now_o to_o this_o our_o adversary_n reply_v that_o see_v the_o spirit_n infernal_a or_o under_o the_o earth_n mean_v the_o damn_a spirit_n in_o hell_n have_v no_o knee_n wherewith_o they_o can_v bow_v and_o that_o the_o word_n knee_n be_v ascribe_v to_o they_o figurative_o therefore_o this_o whole_a sentence_n be_v to_o be_v take_v figurative_o only_a and_o not_o literal_o and_o consequent_o that_o this_o text_n prove_v no●_n that_o we_o ought_v to_o bow_v at_o the_o name_n of_o jesus_n to_o this_o we_o reply_v that_o so_o farforth_o as_o any_o text_n will_v bear_v a_o literal_a sense_n it_o not_o bei●●_n impugn_a by_o any_o other_o text_n more_o literal_a or_o by_o any_o article_n of_o faith_n so_o far_o it_o ought_v to_o be_v take_v literal_o and_o what_o follow_v in_o the_o same_o text_n which_o necessary_o be_v to_o be_v expound_v figurative_o the_o same_o we_o be_v to_o expound_v figurative_o the_o weakness_n of_o our_o adversary_n former_a answer_n be_v otherwise_o discover_v see_v according_a to_o our_o adversary_n former_a answer_n we_o can_v not_o allege_v that_o text_n in_o the_o apocalypse_v these_o 7._o these_o apoc._n c._n 7._o be_v they_o who_o have_v wash_v their_o robe_n in_o the_o blood_n of_o the_o lamb_n to_o prove_v that_o martyr_n and_o other_o saint_n of_o god_n be_v save_v by_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n because_o see_v in_o this_o sentence_n there_o be_v two_o metaphor_n to_o wit_n the_o word_n robe_n whereby_o be_v signify_v the_o body_n of_o the_o saint_n and_o the_o word_n lamb_n mean_v thereby_o christ_n that_o therefore_o it_o shall_v follow_v upon_o the_o former_a ground_n of_o answer_n that_o the_o word_n blood_n shall_v also_o be_v here_o metaphorical_o take_v not_o signify_v blood_n indeed_o and_o so_o exclude_v the_o blood_n of_o christ_n from_o our_o salvation_n but_o some_o other_o thing_n shadow_v thereby_o yea_o which_o be_v more_o if_o this_o kind_n of_o answer_n be_v solid_a we_o can_v scarce_o produce_v any_o one_o sentence_n of_o the_o psalm_n literal_o to_o be_v expound_v of_o christ_n or_o the_o church_n since_o that_o part_n of_o scripture_n be_v most_o luxuriant_a of_o trope_n scheme_n and_o other_o figurative_a speech_n and_o yet_o we_o see_v it_o be_v most_o incongruous_a to_o maintain_v that_o any_o whole_a psalm_n be_v to_o be_v take_v allegorical_o because_o we_o find_v some_o figure_n in_o certain_a passage_n thereof_o now_o to_o conclude_v this_o point_n i_o add_v this_o annotation_n that_o it_o be_v the_o judgement_n of_o all_o chief_a divines_n that_o the_o scripture_n touch_v matter_n of_o faith_n be_v ever_o to_o be_v understand_v literal_o except_o the_o literal_a construction_n do_v impugn_v some_o other_o receive_v article_n of_o faith_n or_o may_v be_v explicate_v figurative_o by_o some_o other_o more_o express_v and_o evident_a passage_n of_o scripture_n or_o last_o that_o word_n be_v so_o evident_a for_o a_o figurative_a sense_n as_o that_o in_o no_o sort_n they_o can_v be_v capable_a of_o a_o literal_a construction_n animadversion_n xxxviii_o oftentimes_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o pope_n or_o a_o council_n be_v fraudulent_o urge_v by_o the_o protestant_n for_o the_o first_o institution_n of_o a_o thing_n when_o indeed_o the_o decree_n or_o council_n only_o teach_v the_o better_a execution_n of_o some_o catholic_a point_n afore_o partly_o neglect_v as_o for_o example_n touch_v confession_n the_o unmarried_a life_n 〈◊〉_d the_o clergy_n or_o keep_v set_v time_n of_o fast_v th●●_n our_o adversary_n hereby_o suggest_v a_o more_o reform_a execution_n of_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o doctrine_n for_o the_o first_o institution_n of_o it_o according_a hereto_o we_o find_v d._n whitaker_n 490._o whitaker_n whimbly_n take_v count_v duraeum_n l._n 7._o pag._n 490._o to_o allege_v innocentius_n the_o three_o pope_n of_o tha●_n name_n say_v innocentius_n be_v the_o first_o tha●_n institute_v auricular_a confession_n whereas_o innocentius_n only_o decree_v that_o confession_n shoul●_n be_v more_o strict_o observe_v now_o that_o confession_n be_v general_o teach_v &_o believe_v before_o innocentius_n his_o time_n be_v evident_a sin●_n the_o centurist_n do_v charge_n tertullian_n &_o cyp●●_n both_o which_o live_v eleven_o or_o twelve_o hu●dreds_n of_o year_n before_o this_o innocentius_n t●●_n three_o with_o teach_v the_o doctrine_n of_o a●●cular_a confession_n animadversion_n thirty-nine_o when_o our_o adversary_n do_v produce_v either_o pope_n decree_n or_o general_a counsel_n for_o th●_n impugn_v of_o some_o catholic_a point_n be_v ●●refull_a to_o observe_v first_o that_o particular_a counsel_n or_o counsel_n schismatical_a th●_n be_v such_o as_o be_v not_o confirm_v by_o the_o pope_n authority_n be_v not_o obtrude_v upon_o you_o for_o true_a general_a counsel_n for_o thus_o they_o urge_v the_o council_n of_o constantinople_n against_o image_n consist_v indeed_o of_o many_o prelate_n but_o neither_o celebrate_v or_o confirm_v by_o the_o pope_n authority_n second_o note_n that_o the_o point_n urge_v do_v concern_v doctrine_n of_o faith_n and_o not_o matter_n of_o fact_n touch_v which_o ●●ter_a point_n it_o be_v grant_v that_o a_o council_n may_v alter_v its_o decree_n upon_o better_a &_o late_a information_n three_o that_o the_o canon_n produce_v out_o of_o the_o council_n do_v immediate_o concern_v the_o doctrine_n itself_o of_o some_o article_n of_o faith_n then_o suppose_v to_o be_v bring_v in_o and_o not_o the_o name_n only_o to_o be_v impose_v upon_o the_o same_o doctrine_n afore_o believe_v as_o it_o happen_v in_o the_o council_n of_o lateran_n touch_v the_o word_n transubstantiation_n the_o doctrine_n thereof_o be_v confess_o believe_v many_o age_n afore_o for_o this_o council_n of_o lateran_n be_v ●n_v the_o year_n 1060._o whereas_o as_o be_v above_o say_v d._n humphrey_n charge_v s._n gregory_n &_o s._n austin_n who_o live_v several_a age_n before_o this_o council_n for_o bring_v into_o england_n the_o doctrine_n of_o transubstantiation_n yea_o 228._o yea_o in_o the_o treatise_n attribute_v to_o visinus_n entitle_v commone_n factio_fw-la 〈◊〉_d asdam_fw-la theologi_fw-la de_fw-fr s._n caena_n pag._n 211._o &_o 228._o vrsinus_n the_o protestant_n insimulate_v theophilact_v &_o damascene_fw-la more_o ancient_a than_o the_o former_a father_n within_o the_o same_o doctrine_n of_o transubstantiation_n animadversion_n xl._n when_o we_o produce_v the_o ancient_a fathers●gainst_a ●gainst_z the_o protestant_n their_o accustom_a thiffe_n be_v
to_o make_v a_o opposition_n between_o the_o scripture_n and_o the_o father_n maintain_v that_o to_o follow_v the_o judgement_n of_o the_o father_n be_v to_o reject_v and_o abandon_v scripture_n &_o th●●_n themselves_o be_v to_o be_v pardon_v for_o prefer_v the_o scripture_n before_o the_o father_n b●_n to_o this_o you_o m●y_v answer_v that_o see_v t●_n father_n do_v urge_v admit_v and_o reverence_n t●_n scripture_n in_o as_o high_a a_o degree_n as_o the_o protestant's_n do_v the_o main_n question_n and_o dou●●_n here_o be_v not_o whether_o the_o scripture_n be_v to_o 〈◊〉_d advance_v above_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o father_n which_o we_o all_o catholic_n do_v fu●●_n acknowledge_v shall_v be_v but_o only_o wheth●●_n the_o father_n or_o the_o protestant_n do_v more_o true_o expound_v the_o scripture_n animadversion_n xli_o the_o father_n have_v many_o advantage_n a●●_n privilege_n for_o interpret_n of_o scriptu●●_n and_o for_o true_a or_o perfect_a faith_n of_o which_o t●_n protestant_n be_v altogether_o deprive_v fir●●_n the_o father_n live_v near_o to_o christ_n some_o co●uersing_v with_o his_o apostle_n other_o in_o succee_a age_n and_o therefore_o more_o easy_a it_o w●●_n for_o they_o to_o know_v what_o exposition_n w●●_n then_o deliver_v of_o the_o scripture_n and_o wh●●_n faith_n be_v first_o preach_v add_v hereto_o th●●_n the_o very_a practice_n of_o their_o religion_n then_o 〈◊〉_d use_v the_o church_n then_o remain_v by_o the_o acknowledgement_n of_o our_o adversary_n in_o her_o ●●rity_n of_o faith_n serve_v as_o a_o comment_n to_o ●hem_n of_o the_o scripture_n second_o diverse_a of_o these_o father_n even_o ●rom_o their_o mother_n breast_n do_v suck_v those_o ●ongues_n wherein_o a_o great_a part_n of_o the_o scripture_n be_v write_v and_o therefore_o they_o be_v ●uch_o advantage_v for_o pick_v out_o the_o true_a ●eaning_n thereof_o whereas_o our_o adversary_n knowledge_n of_o the_o say_a tongue_n be_v get_v on●y_n by_o art_n and_o industry_n which_o ever_o subscribe_v to_o nature_n three_o the_o father_n deliver_v their_o sentence_n and_o interpretation_n of_o scripture_n many_o age_n before_o the_o point_n of_o faith_n &_o doctrine_n 〈◊〉_d for_o which_o they_o be_v urge_v be_v ever_o bring_v in_o question_n or_o doubt_n and_o therefore_o what_o they_o write_v be_v free_a from_o all_o partiality_n of_o judgement_n they_o not_o know_v what_o innovation_n be_v to_o rise_v in_o these_o our_o day_n our_o protestant_a minister_n their_o temporal_a state_n be_v whole_o interest_v ●herein_o must_v now_o of_o necessity_n shape_n the_o construction_n of_o the_o scripture_n to_o the_o maintenance_n of_o the_o religion_n now_o introduce_v the_o father_n though_o write_v in_o several_a age_n several_a tongue_n upon_o several_a occasion_n do_v notwithstanding_o unanimous_o conspire_v together_o in_o their_o writing_n for_o non_fw-la est_fw-la deus_fw-la dissensionis_fw-la sed_fw-la pacis_fw-la and_o if_o any_o one_o by_o chance_n do_v vary_v from_o the_o rest_n he_o be_v reprehend_v by_o they_o but_o the_o protestant_n be_v so_o contrary_a in_o their_o writing_n in_o maintain_v mere_a contradictory_n and_o opposite_a doctrine_n as_o be_v most_o wonderful_a to_o observe_v of_o which_o point_n who_o seeek_v further_a to_o be_v satisfy_v let_v he_o peruse_v such_o book_n as_o be_v late_o write_v upon_o that_o subject_n the_o father_n do_v cut_v of_o all_o let_n and_o impediment_n which_o may_v hinder_v either_o devotion_n or_o study_n hence_o it_o be_v that_o they_o embrace_v perpetual_a chastity_n contemn_v all_o riches_n &_o honour_n chastise_v their_o body_n with_o fast_v prayer_n and_o other_o spiritual_a discipline_n how_o far_o different_a our_o protestant_a doctor_n be_v from_o such_o course_n i_o leave_v to_o the_o world_n to_o judge_v the_o father_n i_o mean_v diverse_a of_o they_o do_v work_v many_o true_a and_o stupendous_a 14._o vide_fw-la cyprian_n serm_n de_fw-fr lapsis_fw-la ambr._n de_fw-fr obitu_fw-la satyr_n c._n 7._o optat_fw-la l._n cont_n donat._n aug._n de_fw-fr civit._n l._n 22._o chrysost_n count_v gentile_n eusebius_n l._n 7._o c._n 14._o miracle_n which_o gift_n of_o exhibit_v miracle_n god_n bestow_v only_o upon_o they_o who_o be_v gracious_a in_o his_o sight_n and_o who_o true_o serve_v he_o but_o not_o man_n can_v serve_v god_n true_o with_o a_o false_a faith_n the_o protestant_a doctor_n never_o yet_o wrought_v any_o one_o miracle_n in_o confirmation_n of_o their_o faith_n the_o evidency_n of_o which_o point_n appear_v from_o the_o liberal_a confession_n of_o the_o protestant_n themselves_o for_o d._n fulke_o thus_o acknowledge_v it_o be_v 13._o be_v against_o the_o rhemish_n testam_fw-la in_o apoc._n c._n 13._o know_v that_o caluin_n and_o the_o rest_n who_o the_o papist_n call_v archheretik_n do_v work_v no_o miracle_n to_o who_o confession_n d._n sutcliffe_n subscribe_v say_v we_o do_v 8._o do_v in_o his_o examen_fw-la of_o d._n kellison_n survey_v print_v 1606._o p._n 8._o not_o practice_v miracle_n nor_o do_v we_o teach_v that_o the_o truth_n of_o doctrine_n be_v to_o be_v confirm_v with_o miracle_n the_o father_n i_o speak_v of_o diverse_a other_o diverse_a as_o ignatius_n polycarpus_n cyprian_n and_o other_o of_o they_o for_o profess_v only_o their_o christian_a faith_n and_o religion_n have_v endure_v with_o invincible_a courage_n and_o immovable_a resolution_n which_o they_o can_v never_o have_v do_v but_o only_o through_o the_o particular_a assistance_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n most_o exquisite_a torment_n yea_o martyrdom_n itself_o of_o who_o it_o may_v be_v true_o say_v paradisi_fw-la clavis_fw-la sanguis_fw-la martyris_fw-la our_o sectary_n doctor_n except_v some_o mechanical_a and_o ignorant_a fellow_n burn_v for_o their_o obstinacy_n in_o queen_n mary_n time_n be_v so_o far_o from_o suffer_v any_o pressure_n for_o profess_v their_o faith_n as_o that_o most_o of_o they_o have_v make_v their_o religion_n a_o ladder_n to_o climb_v up_o to_o worldly_a preferment_n they_o by_o it_o only_o enjoy_v as_o through_o want_n of_o its_o lose_n riches_n honour_n &_o other_o such_o temporal_a advancement_n the_o father_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n do_v represent_v the_o body_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n of_o christ_n in_o those_o time_n for_o of_o necessity_n it_o must_v be_v grant_v that_o all_o the_o several_a member_n of_o the_o church_n of_o god_n do_v believe_v and_o practice_v the_o same_o religion_n which_o gregory_n theodores_n austin_n jerome_n chrysostome_n epiphanius_n the_o gregory_n the_o cyril_n basill_n ambrose_n hilary_n optatus_n cyprian_n irenaeus_n ignatius_n and_o the_o like_a do_v teach_v since_o in_o they_o according_a to_o the_o several_a age_n wherein_o they_o live_v those_o word_n of_o the_o apostle_n be_v fulfil_v 4._o fulfil_v ephes_n 4._o christ_n have_v place_v i●_n his_o church_n pastor_n and_o doctor_n etc._n etc._n now_o all_o this_o grant_v it_o do_v inevitable_o follow_v that_o if_o the_o father_n of_o those_o several_a age_n do_v joint_o err_v in_o their_o interpretation_n of_o scripture_n and_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n and_o belief_n result_v from_o thence_o that_o then_o the_o whole_a visible_a church_n of_o christ_n do_v damnable_o err_v in_o faith_n during_o all_o those_o age_n but_o this_o main_o cross_v both_o the_o command_n as_o also_o the_o promise_n of_o christ_n the_o first_o in_o those_o word_n dic_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la 18._o ecclesiae_fw-la math._n 18._o the_o second_o in_o that_o sentence_n behold_v i_o be_o with_o you_o all_o day_n even_o to_o the_o consummation_n of_o the_o world_n for_o neither_o wood_n christ_n ever_o send_v man_n to_o a_o false_a church_n nor_o can_v he_o be_v say_v to_o be_v ever_o with_o his_o church_n if_o he_o suffer_v it_o to_o profess_v for_o many_o age_n a_o false_a and_o erroneous_a faith_n nor_o upon_o such_o a_o supposal_n can_v the_o church_n be_v true_o style_v columna_fw-la 3.9_o columna_fw-la 1._o timoth_n 3.9_o &_o firmamentum_fw-la veritatis_fw-la last_o the_o more_o learned_a protestant_n do_v ascribe_v all_o excellency_n to_o the_o primitive_a church_n for_o purity_n of_o faith_n and_o consequent_o to_o the_o father_n and_o pastor_n of_o the_o church_n of_o those_o time_n for_o thus_o we_o find_v they_o to_o write_v kempnitius_n thus_o say_v we_o 74._o we_o exa_fw-la council_n trid._n part_n 1._o pag._n 74._o doubt_v not_o but_o that_o the_o primitive_a church_n receive_v from_o the_o apostle_n and_o apostolical_a man_n not_o only_o the_o text_n of_o scripture_n but_o also_o the_o right_n and_o native_a sense_n thereof_o d._n jewel_n the_o primitive_a apology_n primitive_a in_o his_o defence_n of_o the_o apology_n church_n which_o be_v under_o the_o apostle_n and_o martyr_n have_v ever_o be_v account_v the_o pure_a of_o all_o other_o without_o exception_n final_o to_o contract_v this_o point_n d._n bancroft_n heretofore_o the_o archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n thus_o write_v touch_v caluin_n and_o beza_n for_o m._n caluin_n discipline_n caluin_n in_o his_o survey_v of_o the_o pretend_a
discipline_n and_o m._n beza_n i_o do_v think_v of_o they_o as_o their_o writing_n do_v deserve_v but_o yet_o i_o think_v better_o of_o the_o ancient_a father_n and_o with_o this_o i_o end_v touch_v the_o libration_n or_o balance_v of_o the_o father_n of_o the_o primative_a church_n with_o our_o protestant_a doctor_n animadversion_n xlii_o there_o be_v one_o sleight_n use_v by_o our_o adversary_n which_o deserve_v annotation_n it_o be_v this_o they_o be_v unwilling_a open_o to_o break_v with_o the_o father_n so_o long_o as_o they_o can_v pretend_v any_o show_n of_o conjunction_n &_o agreement_n with_o they_o therefore_o when_o they_o find_v any_o of_o our_o catholic_a point_n to_o be_v mantayn_v by_o the_o father_n they_o gentle_o term_v they_o naevos_fw-la nenia_n and_o at_o most_o errores_fw-la blemish_n and_o error_n thus_o favourable_o they_o depress_v in_o the_o father_n our_o catholic_a doctrine_n because_o they_o will_v seem_v to_o continue_v member_n of_o the_o same_o church_n whereof_o the_o father_n be_v but_o now_o they_o style_v the_o same_o opinion_n and_o doctrine_n as_o they_o be_v believe_v by_o we_o no_o less_o than_o heresye_n blasphemye_n jdolatry_n etc._n etc._n thereby_o to_o show_v that_o the_o member_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v not_o member_n of_o christ_n church_n this_o deceitful_a and_o different_a appellation_n be_v precise_o keep_v and_o practise_v by_o the_o centurye_n jllyricus_n doctor_n whytaker_n and_o diverse_a other_o protestant_a writer_n animadversion_n xliii_o our_o adversary_n deportment_n towards_o the_o father_n be_v most_o full_a of_o imposture_n and_o deceit_n and_o they_o use_v certain_a step_n or_o gradatious_a therein_o for_o first_o they_o labour_v to_o evade_v the_o authority_n or_o testimony_n of_o a_o father_n by_o shape_a some_o seem_a answer_n to_o it_o yet_o still_o admit_v the_o authority_n produce_v next_o if_o the_o testimony_n object_v by_o we_o out_o of_o any_o father_n be_v for_o its_o perspicuity_n not_o capable_a of_o any_o evade_a answer_n then_o they_o labour_v to_o weaken_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o say_a father_n by_o make_v he_o seem_v to_o contradict_v himself_o in_o some_o other_o place_n of_o the_o same_o point_n or_o else_o to_o be_v contradict_v therein_o by_o other_o father_n after_o this_o manner_n do_v d._n whitaker_n in_o question_n of_o tradition_n say_v of_o 670._o of_o d._n whit._n l._n de_fw-fr sacr._n script_n pag._n 670._o basill_n basilius_n secum_fw-la pugnat_fw-la as_o also_o charge_v s._n austin_n 28_n austin_n d._n whit._fw-la ubi_fw-la supra_fw-la 28_n with_o the_o like_a contrariety_n in_o judgement_n touch_v the_o same_o doctrine_n of_o tradition_n but_o when_o they_o be_v tell_v that_o it_o be_v most_o improbable_a that_o the_o father_n be_v such_o learned_a man_n as_o they_o be_v shall_v without_o any_o acknoledged_a retractation_n of_o their_o former_a writing_n cross_v themselves_o in_o their_o late_a write_n our_o adversary_n then_o unmask_v themselves_o plain_o call_v the_o father_n superstitious_a blind_a and_o open_a mantayner_n of_o papistry_n which_o point_n sha●_n be_v make_v evident_a by_o these_o testimony_n of_o the_o protestant_n pass_v upon_o they_o and_o to_o begin_v with_o luther_n he_o thus_o write_v of_o the_o father_n in_o general_a the_o 4●4_n the_o luth._o de_fw-la seruo_fw-la arbitrio_fw-la print_a anno_fw-la 15●1_n pag._n 4●4_n father_n of_o so_o many_o age_n have_v be_v plain_o blind_a and_o most_o ignorant_a in_o the_o scripture_n they_o have_v err_v all_o their_o life_n time_n and_o unless_o they_o be_v amend_v before_o their_o death_n they_o be_v neither_o saint_n nor_o pertain_v to_o the_o church_n melancthon_n join_v hand_n with_o luther_n herein_o 31._o herein_o melancth_v in_o 1._o cor._n cap_n 31._o in_o these_o word_n present_o from_o the_o beginning_n of_o the_o church_n the_o ancient_a father_n obscure_v the_o doctrine_n concern_v justification_n by_o faith_n increase_v ceremony_n and_o devise_v peculiar_a worship_n with_o both_o who_o to_o omit_v the_o like_a condemn_a speech_n of_o other_o pass_v upon_o the_o father_n conspire_v d._n whitaker_n thus_o scurrilous_o write_v exit_fw-la patrum_fw-la 4●3_n patrum_fw-la contra_fw-la ●u●aeum_fw-la p._n 4●3_n erroribus_fw-la ille_fw-la pontificiae_fw-la religionis_fw-la cento_n consutus_fw-la est_fw-la the_o religion_n of_o the_o papist_n be_v a_o patch_a cloth_n of_o the_o father_n error_n sow_v together_o thus_o ●ar_v of_o the_o several_a peculiar_a delivery_n of_o our_o adversary_n against_o the_o father_n animadversion_n xliv_o touch_v the_o controversy_n whether_o the_o bless_a virgin_n be_v conceive_v in_o original_a sin_n such_o catholic_n as_o deny_v the_o same_o hold_v the_o denial_n thereof_o only_o as_o a_o probable_a and_o pious_a opinion_n and_o not_o as_o matter_n of_o faith_n we_o therefore_o be_v to_o conceive_v that_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o first_o parent_n be_v communicate_v to_o his_o son_n and_o posterity_n three_o manner_n of_o way_n first_o then_o the_o son_n of_o adam_n be_v say_v to_o have_v sin_v in_o adam_n himself_o in_o that_o adam_n do_v transgress_v the_o precept_n of_o god_n in_o paradise_n and_o because_o the_o son_n of_o adam_n be_v not_o then_o in_o actu_fw-la but_o in_o potentia_fw-la only_o therefore_o that_o sin_n they_o contract_v not_o in_o actu_fw-la but_o only_o in_o potentia_fw-la and_o in_o this_o sense_n it_o may_v be_v say_v that_o the_o b._n virgin_n sin_v in_o adam_n second_o all_o the_o child_n of_o adam_n be_v say_v to_o be_v conceive_v in_o sin_n as_o soon_o as_o the_o child_n begin_v to_o exist_v in_o the_o mother_n womb_n although_o it_o be_v then_o unform_v and_o without_o life_n because_o a_o man_n then_o begin_v true_o to_o exist_v in_o respect_n of_o one_o of_o his_o part_n &_o that_o part_n have_v its_o beginning_n from_o a_o corrupt_a nature_n and_o may_v be_v say_v to_o be_v true_o vitiate_v by_o force_n of_o its_o generation_n and_o in_o this_o sense_n also_o we_o acknowledge_v that_o the_o bless_a virgin_n have_v her_o beginning_n from_o a_o corrupt_a nature_n and_o that_o by_o force_n of_o such_o generation_n it_o be_v due_a that_o sin_n shall_v be_v contract_v as_o soon_o as_o her_o rational_a soul_n be_v join_v to_o her_o body_n the_o three_o and_o last_o manner_n whereby_o man_n be_v say_v to_o be_v conceive_v in_o sin_n be_v when_o their_o soul_n be_v inspire_v into_o their_o body_n since_o at_o that_o time_n they_o begin_v proper_o &_o real_o to_o become_v man_n and_o to_o have_v their_o w●●_n naked_a of_o original_a justice_n and_o consequent_o avert_v from_o god_n and_o in_o itself_o deform_v now_o touch_v this_o three_o and_o last_o kind_n we_o hold_v it_o most_o probable_a that_o the_o soul_n of_o the_o bless_a virgin_n even_o at_o the_o first_o instant_n of_o its_o creation_n and_o infusion_n into_o the_o body_n be_v so_o without_o spot_n of_o original_a sin_n as_o that_o person_n of_o she_o actual_o existing_a have_v never_o any_o sin_n she_o herein_o differ_v from_o all_o other_o in_o that_o she_o be_v free_v from_o original_a sin_n even_o in_o the_o very_a instant_n of_o her_o animation_n now_o here_o it_o be_v to_o be_v note_v that_o the_o text_n of_o scripture_n urge_v by_o the_o protestant_n to_o prove_v that_o the_o bless_a virgin_n be_v conceive_v in_o original_a sin_n have_v respect_n &_o reference_n only_o to_o one_o or_o other_o of_o the_o first_o two_o kind_n touch_v the_o propagation_n of_o original_a sin_n in_o man_n but_o they_o have_v not_o any_o true_a reference_n to_o this_o last_o kind_n animadversion_n xlv_o it_o be_v most_o wonderful_a to_o observe_v the_o great_a contempt_n and_o little_a respect_n our_o adversary_n give_v to_o our_o bless_a lady_n diverse_a of_o they_o speak_v of_o caluin_n &_o beza_n two_o sodomite_n even_o by_o the_o protestant_n 93._o protestant_n see_v schlusselburge_n l_o ●_o fol._n 121._o &_o l._n 1_o fol._n 93._o confession_n with_o great_a obseruancy_n style_v they_o discipline_n they_o so_o d_o ban●r●ss_n style_v caluin_n and_o beza_n in_o his_o survey_v of_o the_o pretend_a discipline_n m._n caluin_n m._n beza_n in_o like_a manner_n speak_v of_o luther_n that_o wicked_a monk_n they_o fear_v not_o to_o call_v he_o the_o elias_n 416._o elias_n fox_n act._n mon._n pa._n 416._o conductour_n &_o chariot_n of_o jsrael_n but_o when_o they_o come_v to_o name_v our_o bless_a lady_n who_o be_v a_o intemerate_v virgin_n the_o queen_n of_o heaven_n a_o instrument_n of_o man_n redemption_n the_o mother_n of_o god_n and_o saviour_n of_o the_o world_n most_o of_o they_o blunt_o and_o rude_o style_v she_o without_o any_o addition_n of_o honour_n only_a mary_n o_o contempt_n most_o sacrilegious_a and_o insufferable_a animadversion_n xlvi_o in_o the_o hymn_n of_o our_o lady_n office_n thus_o begin_n aue_fw-la mari●_n stella_fw-la etc._n etc._n two_o passage_n much_o distaste_n our_o adversary_n the_o first_o 〈◊〉_d this_o solve_n
some_o hundred_o and_o yet_o remain_v to_o be_v yearly_a see_v even_o with_o spot_n of_o blood_n at_o the_o chief_a church_n in_o brussells_n in_o the_o low_a country_n what_o can_v our_o adversary_n answer_n herero_n if_o they_o grant_v the_o miracle_n they_o withal_o grant_v the_o truth_n of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o real_a presence_n to_o deny_v it_o by_o say_v that_o when_o one_o host_n be_v corrupt_v through_o time_n another_o be_v secret_o thrust_v in_o the_o former_a place_n be_v more_o than_o absurd_a for_o will_v the_o prince_n of_o those_o country_n the_o lord_n bishop_n prelate_n other_o religious_a person_n and_o the_o whole_a communality_n suffer_v themselves_o to_o be_v thus_o abuse_v from_o time_n to_o time_n with_o such_o imposture_n but_o that_o they_o will_v be_v most_o desirous_a to_o find_v out_o and_o descry_v all_o such_o wicked_a stratagem_n and_o devise_n true_o i_o do_v not_o see_v what_o answer_n in_o full_a weight_n of_o reason_n can_v be_v give_v hereto_o to_o convince_v the_o judgement_n of_o any_o sufficient_a man._n animadversion_n lxxi_o that_o catholic_a religion_n afford_v salvation_n to_o the_o professor_n thereof_o be_v prove_v several_a way_n even_o from_o our_o adversary_n own_o pen_n and_o first_o because_o o●●_n adversary_n do_v reach_v that_o the_o church_n o●_n rome_n notwithstanding_o her_o presume_a error_n be_v the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n &_o consequent_o her_o professor_n capable_a of_o salvation_n according_a hereto_o thus_o write_v d._n field_n 46._o field_n l._n of_o the_o church_n c._n 46._o we_o doubt_v not_o but_o that_o church_n ●t_a which_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n with_o more_o than_o lu●●ferlike_a pride_n exalt_v himself_o be_v notwithstanding_o the_o true_a church_n of_o god_n and_o that_o it_o hold_v a_o save_a profession_n of_o the_o truth_n in_o christ._n d._n s●●●_n aver_v the_o same_o verity_n in_o these_o word_n 176._o word_n in_o his_o defence_n against_o penry_n pag._n 176._o you_o think_v that_o all_o the_o popish_a sort_n whe●●_n die_v in_o the_o popish_a church_n be_v damn_v y●●_n think_v absurd_o and_o do_v dissent_v from_o the_o judgement_n of_o all_o learned_a protestant_n with_o the●●_n conspire_v to_o omit_v other_o d._n covell_a th●●_n writing_n we_o 77._o we_o in_o his_o defence_n of_o m._n hoo●er_n pag._n 77._o affirm_v they_o of_o t●e_v churchy_n rome_n to_o be_v a_o part_n of_o the_o true_a church_n of_o chri●●_n and_o that_o those_o that_o live_v &_o die_v in_o that_o church_n may_v be_v save_v another_o reason_n may_v be_v take_v from_o the_o lawfulness_n even_o in_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o learned_a protestant_n of_o child_n of_o papist_n as_o we_o be_v style_v whether_o they_o be_v baptise_a by_o catholic_a priest_n 〈◊〉_d protestant_n minister_n and_o the_o cause_n of_o th●_n lawfulness_n thereof_o be_v deliver_v by_o the_o protestant_n in_o these_o word_n because_o other_o because_o so_o teach_v the_o divines_n of_o geneva_n in_o their_o proposition_n and_o principle_n dispute_v at_o gen._n p._n 178._o the_o same_o be_v teach_v by_o d._n whitg●●fe_n in_o 〈◊〉_d defence_n pa._n ●23_n by_o m._n hooker_n eccles_n po●_n l._n 3._o p._n 131._o &_o by_o other_o we_o affirm_v that_o those_o child_n be_v comprehend_v within_o the_o covenant_n of_o eternal_a life_n by_o mean_n of_o the_o faith_n of_o their_o parent_n a_o three_o reason_n of_o the_o protestant_n true_a judgement_n herein_o concern_v the_o father_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n in_o general_a who_o that_o they_o live_v &_o dye_v papist_n be_v most_o evident_a by_o what_o have_v be_v confess_v above_o by_o our_o adversary_n now_o of_o they_o cartwrigh●_n thus_o write_v i_o 82_o i_o cartwright_n in_o his_o reply_n &_o in_o d._n whitguift_n defence_n p._n 82_o doubt_v not_o but_o that_o diverse_a father_n of_o the_o greek_a church_n who_o be_v patroness_n of_o freewill_n be_v save_v the_o like_a charitable_a opinion_n of_o the_o father_n though_o papist_n both_o living_n &_o die_v be_v deliver_v by_o 78._o by_o contra_fw-la ra●_n camp_n pag._n 78._o d._n whitaker_n notwithstanding_o the_o father_n doctrine_n touch_v satisfaction_n and_o merit_n of_o work_n final_o the_o protestant_n judgement_n be_v also_o herein_o manifest_v in_o their_o common_o give_v in_o their_o writing_n and_o speech_n to_o austin_n jerome_n ambrose_n and_o the_o rest_n who_o they_o acknowledge_v to_o profess_v and_o die_v in_o our_o catholic_a faith_n and_o religion_n the_o name_n and_o title_n of_o saint_n as_o s._n austin_n s._n jerome_n etc._n etc._n animadversion_n lxxii_o if_o it_o be_v urge_v that_o the_o denial_n of_o freewill_n for_o example_n be_v teach_v by_o manicheus_fw-la and_o consequent_o that_o the_o protestant_a faith_n therein_o be_v as_o ancient_a as_o those_o primitive_a time_n it_o may_v be_v reply_v that_o this_o particular_a heretic_n or_o that_o particular_a heretic_n do_v teach_v but_o one_o or_o other_o protestant_a article_n in_o those_o day_n and_o be_v sustant_o write_v against_o for_o such_o their_o innovation_n the_o say_v innovatour_n be_v catholic_a in_o all_o other_o point_n and_o therefore_o you_o may_v tru●●_n infer_v that_o the_o urge_v of_o such_o example_n be_v mere_o impertinent_a either_o for_o the_o proof_n of_o the_o antiquity_n of_o the_o protestant_a religion_n or_o for_o the_o visibility_n of_o the_o protestant_a church_n in_o those_o day_n animadversion_n lxxiii_o if_o you_o dispute_v with_o any_o protestant_n by_o writing_n or_o interchange_v of_o letter_n write_v nothing_o but_o matter_n with_o as_o much_o compendiousne●_n as_o the_o subject_n will_v bear_v without_o any_o verbal_a excursion_n or_o digression_n for_o this_o proceed_n will_v force_v your_o adversary_n to_o reply_v if_o he_o will_v reply_v to_o the_o ma●ter_n for_o otherwise_o leave_v the_o materials_n point_n which_o be_v chief_o issuable_a and_o to_o be_v handle_v he_o will_v shape_v a_o reply_n to_o other_o less_o necessary_a stuff_n deliver_v by_o you_o and_o than_o his_o reply_n must_v pass_v abroad_o by_o the_o help_n of_o many_o partial_a tongue_n for_o a_o full_a answer_n to_o your_o whole_a discourse_n animadversion_n lxxiv_o whereas_o you_o may_v allege_v diverse_a acknowledge_v heresy_n both_o in_o the_o judgement_n of_o protestant_n &_o catholik_o out_o of_o the_o book_n concern_v diverse_a person_n who_o believe_v some_o few_o point_n of_o protestancy_n record_v in_o the_o say_a book_n here_o i_o speak_v of_o w●●ldo_n wiclife_o etc._n etc._n now_o if_o here_o your_o adversary_n disputant_n do_v avouch_v as_o many_o protestant_n do_v that_o these_o heresy_n be_v false_o obtrude_v and_o father_v upon_o the_o say_v presume_v protestant_n by_o their_o enemy_n you_o may_v here_o reply_v that_o to_o affirm_v this_o be_v against_o the_o force_n of_o all_o reason_n for_o see_v the_o same_o book_n do_v make_v indifferent_a mention_n both_o of_o the_o protestant_a opinion_n and_o of_o the_o other_o heresy_n defend_v by_o the_o same_o man_n either_o the_o say_a book_n be_v to_o be_v believe_v in_o both_o or_o to_o be_v reject_v concern_v both_o if_o the_o first_o than_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o those_o man_n do_v believe_v those_o acknowledge_a heresy_n if_o the_o late_a than_o the_o say_a book_n be_v not_o of_o sufficient_a authority_n to_o prove_v that_o there_o be_v any_o protestant_n in_o those_o age_n animadversion_n lxxv_o in_o your_o proof_n draw_v from_o scripture_n labour_v to_o be_v much_o practise_v in_o the_o protestant_a translation_n of_o it_o of_o which_o infinite_a place_n make_v for_o the_o catholic_a cause_n even_o as_o the_o scripture_n be_v translate_v by_o the_o protestant_n for_o this_o course_n gaul_v they_o far_o more_o then_o if_o you_o insist_v only_o in_o the_o catholic_a translation_n animadversion_n lxxvi_o i_o will_v here_o set_v down_o certain_a observation_n which_o will_v easy_o solve_v all_o difficulty_n or_o argument_n whatsoever_o rise_v from_o scripture_n or_o father_n against_o communion_n under_o one_o kind_n only_o 1._o first_o whereas_o sundry_a place_n of_o scripture_n and_o father_n do_v speak_v indifferent_o o●_n only_o make_v mention_n of_o communion_n under_o both_o kind_n or_o do_v affirm_v the_o use_n thereof_o to_o be_v lawful_a yet_o from_o hence_o which_o be_v the_o point_n issuable_a can_v be_v infer_v any_o precept_n of_o christ_n as_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n 2._o second_o when_o such_o place_n be_v urge_v which_o contain_v in_o they_o a_o precept_n the_o same_o place_n be_v either_o understand_v of_o priest_n who_o do_v sacrifice_n who_o bond_n be_v different_a from_o they_o of_o the_o laity_n or_o else_o they_o concern_v only_o the_o time_n and_o place_n when_o 〈◊〉_d where_o that_o custom_n of_o both_o kind_n be_v observe_v for_o the_o custom_n of_o the_o church_n whether_o it_o be_v general_a in_o the_o whole_a church_n or_o particular_a in_o some_o notable_a place_n thereof_o a●_n in_o one_o country_n kingdom_n
and_o religion_n animadversion_n lxxxvi_o strive_v to_o be_v more_o conversant_a and_o ready_a if_o opportunity_n will_v not_o suffer_v you_o to_o be_v ready_a in_o all_o in_o such_o controversy_n which_o consist_v in_o practice_n as_o about_o pray_v to_o saint_n jndulgence_n worship_v of_o image_n adoration_n of_o the_o most_o b._n sacrament_n communion_n under_o one_o kind_a etc._n etc._n then_o in_o other_o which_o test_n only_o in_o belief_n and_o speculation_n see_v the_o vulgar_a protestant_n soon_o take_v exception_n against_o these_o former_a and_o will_v expect_v great_a satisfaction_n from_o you_o in_o they_o because_o these_o be_v subject_n to_o their_o sense_n in_o regard_n of_o the_o daily_a practice_n of_o they_o come_v neede_v within_o the_o compass_n of_o their_o narrow_a capacity_n &_o be_v by_o they_o often_o charge_v through_o the_o calumny_n of_o their_o chief_a master_n abuse_v their_o credulity_n with_o many_o suppose_a abuse_n whereas_o other_o point_n of_o faith_n which_o consist_v chief_o in_o theory_n and_o speculation_n be_v further_o remove_v from_o their_o apprehension_n and_o consequent_o they_o be_v least_o entangle_v with_o the_o doubt_n thereof_o animadversion_n lxxxvii_o touch_v those_o article_n or_o controversy_n which_o chief_o rest_n in_o speculation_n be_v well_o traval_v in_o the_o question_n touchi●●_n the_o jnfallibility_n of_o god_n church_n as_o also_o 〈◊〉_d that_o other_o question_n that_o the_o scriptu●●_n without_o the_o church_n attestation_n not_o pro●●_n itself_o to_o be_v scripture_n and_o that_o all_o point_n of_o belief_n do_v not_o receive_v their_o proof_n from_o scriptu●●_n alone_o see_v these_o two_o controversy_n potential_o include_v most_o of_o all_o other_o controversy_n within_o themselves_o also_o be_v most_o re●dy_a in_o the_o question_n touch_v the_o continu●_n visibility_n of_o the_o protestant_a church_n see_v t●●_n protestant_n must_v seek_v to_o prove_v th●●_n church_n ever_o to_o have_v be_v visible_a if_o th●_n will_v aver_v it_o to_o be_v the_o true_a church_n of_o chri●●_n whereas_o indeed_o you_o shall_v find_v even_o by_o t●●_n confession_n of_o his_o own_o brethren_n as_o be_v e●●●_n where_o in_o this_o treatise_n make_v clear_a that_o t●_n protestant_n be_v not_o able_a to_o instance_n for_o ma●_n century_n and_o age_n together_o so_o much_o a_o the_o be_v but_o of_o one_o protestant_n animadversion_n lxxxviii_o there_o be_v scarce_o any_o one_o argument_n o●_n credibility_n which_o more_o strong_o and_o irr●pliably_o prove_v the_o antiquity_n and_o there●●_n the_o truth_n of_o the_o roman_a religion_n and_o the_o novelty_n and_o lateness_n of_o protestancy_n and_o consequent_o the_o falsehood_n thereof_o then_o this_o follow_v there_o can_v be_v allege_v any_o one_o protestant_a speak_v of_o such_o protestant_n as_o be_v out_o of_o controversy_n and_o acknowledge_v for_o such_o both_o by_o the_o catholic_n and_o protestant_n who_o be_v not_o either_o in_o himself_o or_o in_o his_o forefather_n first_o a_o catholic_a and_o who_o by_o dogmatize_v some_o protestant_a opinion_n afore_o never_o general_o teach_v do_v separate_v himself_o &_o depart_v from_o the_o catholic_a church_n afore_o then_o in_o be_v of_o which_o sort_n of_o man_n those_o word_n in_o s._n john_n be_v understand_v exierunt_fw-la 1._o exierunt_fw-la 1._o joan._n 1._o ex_fw-la nobis_fw-la the_o very_a stamp_n or_o signature_n of_o innovatour_n in_o doctrine_n this_o assertion_n be_v most_o true_a and_o to_o exemplify_v it_o in_o the_o chief_a protestant_n or_o maintainer_n but_o of_o some_o point_n of_o protestancy_n i_o mean_v luther_n swinglius_n ochinus_n jerome_n of_o prage_n waldo_n wicleffe_n albigenses_n berengarius_fw-la and_o to_o rise_v to_o the_o heretic_n of_o high_a time_n as_o acrius_fw-la jovinian_a manicheu●_n and_o the_o rest_n it_o be_v certain_a that_o all_o these_o w●re_o original_o catholic_n and_o by_o introduce_v of_o some_o novelisme_n do_v depart_v from_o the_o catholic_a church_n that_o all_o these_o and_o all_o such_o other_o as_o may_v be_v allege_v be_v original_o catholic_n be_v demonstrative_o prove_v from_o the_o implicit_a confession_n of_o the_o learned_a protestant_n themselves_n acknowledge_v the_o inuisibility_n of_o their_o own_o church_n for_o so_o many_o age_n together_o thus_o for_o example_n write_v sebastianus_n francus_n the_o protestant_n as_o above_o be_v s●ewed_v for_o eccles_n for_o in_o ep._n de_fw-la abrogandis_fw-la in_o universum_fw-la omnibus_fw-la statut._n eccles_n certain_a through_o the_o work_n of_o antichrist_n the_o external_a church_n together_o with_o the_o faith_n and_o sacrament_n vanish_v away_o present_o after_o the_o apostle_n departure_n and_o that_o for_o these_o fourteen_o hundred_o year_n the_o church_n he_o mean_v his_o own_o protestant_a church_n have_v not_o be_v external_a and_o visible_a with_o who_o agree_v d._n fu●ke_n say_v the_o ●i_o the_o fulke_o in_o his_o answer_n to_o a_o counterfeit_n cathol_n p._n ●i_o church_n dec●yed_v immediate_o after_o the_o apostle_n day_n furthermore_o to_o enlarge_v myself_o in_o the_o protestant_n confession_n herein_o m._n perkins_n the_o protestant_n say_v thus_o before_o 400._o before_o perkins_n in_o his_o exposition_n of_o the_o creed_n p._n 400._o the_o day_n of_o luther_n for_o the_o space_n of_o many_o hundred_o year_n a_o universal_a apostasy_n overspread_v the_o whole_a face_n of_o the_o earth_n and_o that_o our_o church_n be_v not_o then_o visible_a to_o the_o world_n m._n napper_n in_o like_a manner_n thus_o write_v god_n 25._o god_n napper_n upon_o revel_v in_o c._n 11._o &_o 12._o l._n 2._o c._n 2._o p._n 25._o have_v withdraw_v his_o visible_a church_n from_o open_a assemb_v ie_n to_o the_o heart_n of_o particular_a godly_a man_n etc._n etc._n during_o the_o space_n of_o 〈◊〉_d hundred_o &_o sixty_o year_n the_o true_a church_n abide_v ●●t●nt_a &_o invisible_a but_o m._n brocard_n confess_v further_a in_o these_o word_n during_o 100l_n during_o broc_n upon_o the_o revel_v p._n 100l_n even_o the_o second_o and_o three_o age_n mean_v after_o christ_n the_o true_a church_n of_o god_n and_o light_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v obscure_v by_o the_o roman_a antichrist_n himself_o i_o ●ill_v here_o conclude_v with_o d._n downam_n thus_o aver_v the_o antichrist_n the_o d._n down_o lib._n de_fw-fr antichrist_n general_n defection_n of_o the_o visible_a church_n foretell_v 2._o thessaly_n 2._o begin_v to_o work_v in_o the_o apostle_n time_n so_o luxuriant_a be_v the_o protestant_n in_o confess_v the_o inuisibility_n of_o their_o own_o church_n for_o many_o age_n together_o so_o as_o we_o see_v that_o by_o the_o confession_n of_o these_o learned_a protestant_n it_o be_v clear_a that_o all_o the_o former_a allege_a protestant_n or_o any_o other_o which_o can_v be_v though_o false_o suggest_v for_o such_o be_v original_a catholic_n now_o i_o hence_o conclude_v that_o if_o on_o the_o one_o side_n it_o be_v prove_v that_o every_o protestant_n do_v original_o come_v out_o and_o depart_v by_o vent_v of_o some_o protestanticall_a position_n from_o our_o catholic_a church_n afore_o enjoy_v a_o priority_n of_o be_v and_o that_o on_o the_o othersyde_o our_o adversary_n can_v show_v any_o visible_a society_n of_o man_n profess_v the_o true_a christian_a faith_n from_o which_o as_o more_o ancient_a the_o present_a roman_a religion_n depart_v as_o it_o be_v impossible_a for_o they_o to_o do_v i_o say_v i_o hence_o conclude_v that_o our_o catholic_a faith_n be_v most_o ancient_a and_o therefore_o true_a and_o protestancy_n in_o respect_n thereof_o but_o late_a innovation_n and_o therefore_o false_a animadversion_n lxxxix_o i_o will_v here_o rest_v in_o some_o animadversion_n touch_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o real_a presence_n and_o touch_v the_o salve_v of_o the_o difficulty_n thereof_o we_o be_v to_o recur_v to_o god_n power_n which_o may_v in_o part_n be_v explicate_v in_o these_o ensue_a proposition_n the_o first_o proposition_n god_n be_v able_a to_o do_v every_o thing_n which_o man_n understanding_n be_v able_a to_o conceive_v the_o reason_n hereof_o be_v in_o that_o ens_fw-la &_o verum_fw-la in_o general_n be_v the_o object_n of_o our_o mind_n and_o therefore_o what_o may_v be_v conceive_v or_o understand_v may_v real_o exist_v and_o consequent_o be_v perform_v the_o second_o proposition_n all_o christian_a philosopher_n affirm_v that_o not_o only_a thing_n which_o man_n be_v able_a to_o apprehend_v in_o his_o mind_n but_o also_o many_o other_o thing_n incomprehensible_a in_o man_n understanding_n god_n can_v effect_v forse_v say_v they_o that_o totum_fw-la ens_fw-la be_v intelligible_a and_o to_o be_v conceive_v and_o that_o which_o be_v not_o ens_fw-la can_v be_v conceive_v and_o that_o the_o imbecility_n of_o man_n understanding_n be_v such_o that_o it_o suppose_v many_o thing_n can_v exist_v or_o be_v and_o consequent_o can_v be_v apprehend_v by_o the_o understanding_n which_o may_v indeed_o exist_v and_o so_o may_v be_v perform_v by_o god_n therefore_o say_v they_o that_o thing_n incomprehensible_a in_o
do_v still_o remain_v at_o one_o time_n though_o far_o remote_a one_o from_o another_o whereas_o these_o precedent_n and_o future_a time_n in_o both_o which_o one_o and_o the_o same_o jnstant_a of_o duration_n or_o eternity_n be_v be_v ever_o in_o a_o flow_a and_o depart_a motion_n and_o consequent_o can_v by_v any_o possibility_n remain_v together_o for_o we_o see_v that_o the_o time_n past_a do_v ever_o give_v place_n to_o the_o time_n to_o come_v thus_o far_o of_o these_o former_a animadversion_n in_o this_o place_n to_o show_v that_o it_o be_v possible_a that_o christ_n bo●●_n may_v be_v in_o several_a place_n at_o one_o and_o th●_n same_o tyme._n animadversion_n lxxxxiv_n in_o all_o positive_a and_o affirmative_a point_n o●_n faith_n the_o protestant_n do_v agree_v with_o the_o catholics_n the_o protestant_n borrow_v th●_n say_v affirmative_a point_n from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n according_a hereto_o we_o find_v luth●●_n thus_o to_o write_v we_o baptist_n we_o luther_n lib._n contra_fw-la ana._n baptist_n confess_v that_o there_o be_v under_o the_o papacy_n most_o of_o the_o christian_a good_a y●●_n rather_o all_o the_o christian_a good_a and_o that_o from_o thence_o it_o come_v to_o us._n we_o confess_v that_o there_o be_v i●_n the_o papacy_n true_a scripture_n true_a baptism_n the_o true_a sacrament_n of_o the_o altar_n the_o true_a key_n to_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n the_o true_a office_n of_o preach_v true_a catechism_n etc._n etc._n i_o say_v further_o there_o be_v in_o th●_n papacy_n true_a christianity_n or_o rather_o the_o tru●_n kernel_n of_o christianity_n thus_o luther_n to_o the_o former_a position_n i_o adjoine_v this_o follow_a in_o such_o point_n of_o faith_n wherein_o protestancy_n dissent_v from_o the_o roman_a church_n all_o the_o say_a point_n be_v merre_o negation_n to_o the_o contrary_a affirmative_a article_n believe_v by_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n as_o for_o example_n denial_n of_o real_a presence_n denial_n of_o pray_v to_o saint_n denial_n of_o freewill_n and_o so_o of_o the_o rest_n now_o from_o these_o two_o proposition_n do_v result_v these_o inference_n or_o conclusion_n follow_v the_o first_o that_o the_o protestant_n as_o he_o believe_v any_o affirmative_a article_n with_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n in_o that_o respect_n he_o be_v not_o a_o protestant_n but_o rather_o a_o catholic_a as_o ●king_v the_o belief_n of_o they_o from_o the_o catholic_a church_n as_o be_v above_o say_v the_o se●ond_a inference_n that_o protestancy_n as_o pro●stancy_n consist_v in_o denial_n of_o such_o affirmative_a point_n which_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n affirm_v to_o be_v true_a and_o not_o in_o believe_v ●ith_o the_o say_a church_n certain_a chief_a point_n ●f_n christianity_n the_o three_o inference_n see_v ●he_v reduplicative_a formality_n of_o protestancy_n re_v in_o negation_n or_o privation_n of_o a_o affirmative_a faith_n and_o see_v negation_n or_o privation_n have_v no_o entity_n subsistence_n or_o real_a be_v that_o therefore_o protestancy_n as_o protestancy_n have_v no_o reality_n of_o be_v but_o be_v in_o itself_o a_o mere_a nonentity_n or_o nothing_o &_o consequent_o it_o follow_v that_o protestancy_n can_v proceed_v from_o god_n who_o be_v the_o author_n of_o thing_n and_o of_o that_o which_o be_v but_o not_o of_o that_o which_o be_v not_o or_o be_v nothing_o the_o last_o inference_n shall_v be_v that_o protestant_n by_o their_o denial_n of_o so_o many_o affirmative_a article_n of_o christianity_n may_v seem_v to_o bear_v great_a reference_n to_o antichrist_n who_o at_o his_o come_n shall_v by_o his_o denial_n of_o all_o point_n of_o christian_a religion_n seek_v what_o in_o he_o lie_v to_o annihilate_v and_o overthrow_v all_o christian_a religion_n and_o for_o such_o his_o proceed_v some_o ancient_a father_n do_v conjecture_v that_o his_o name_n shall_v be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d signify_v nego_fw-la as_o hippolytus_n martyr_n write_v in_o oratione_fw-la de_fw-la consummatione_fw-la mundi_fw-la and_o this_o both_o by_o reason_n that_o this_o greek_a word_n make_v up_o the_o number_n to_o wit_n 666._o which_o be_v ascribe_v peculiar_o to_o antichrist_n in_o the_o apocalypse_v cap._n 13._o as_o also_o in_o that_o antichrist_n &_o his_o minister_n at_o his_o come_n both_o in_o their_o denial_n and_o work_n shall_v labour_v mighty_o to_o evert_v christian_a religion_n animadversion_n lxxxxv_n though_o protestancy_n seem_v to_o maintain_v some_o affirmative_a position_n as_o parity_n of_o minister_n marriage_n of_o priest_n and_o other_o votary_n reprobation_n christ_n only_a mediatorship_n by_o way_n of_o jntercession_n christ_n suffer_v in_o soul_n yet_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o these_o poution_n be_v only_o affirmative_a in_o word_n but_o mere_o negative_a in_o sense_n since_o they_o be_v negative_n to_o the_o monarchy_n of_o the_o church_n goverment●_n to_o vow_a chastity_n to_o universality_n of_o grace_n to_o the_o intercession_n of_o saint_n and_o to_o the_o all_o sufficiency_n of_o christ_n corporal_a death_n all_o which_o our_o catholic_a point_n be_v affirmative_a such_o be_v the_o subtlety_n of_o innovation_n in_o doctrine_n as_o for_o the_o great_a honour_n to_o invest_v their_o negative_a tenet_n in_o affirmative_a title_n animadversion_n lxxxxvi_n though_o in_o show_n of_o word_n falshood_n as_o be_v above_o show_v may_v be_v deliver_v in_o affirmative_n so_o i_o here_o say_v that_o truth_n sometime_o be_v deliver_v in_o negative_a word_n notwithstanding_o truth_n be_v ever_o affirmative_a and_o falsehood_n negative_a and_o therefore_o the_o schoolman_n true_o teach_v intellectus_fw-la 17._o intellectus_fw-la s._n thomas_n part_n 1._o q._n 17._o decipitu●_n non_fw-la circa_fw-la quid_fw-la est_fw-la sed_fw-la circa_fw-la quid_fw-la non_fw-la est_fw-la to_o exemplify_v this_o animadversion_n to_o say_v god_n be_v cruel_a or_o man_n be_v blind_a though_o these_o say_n be_v deliver_v in_o affirmative_a term_n and_o false_a yet_o they_o be_v in_o sense_n and_o understanding_n mere_o negative_a since_o cruelty_n be_v exclusive_a to_o mercy_n and_o blindness_n to_o sight_n so_o on_o the_o contrary_a to_o say_v god_n be_v not_o cruel_a and_o man_n be_v not_o blind_a though_o they_o be_v in_o term_n negative_a &_o true_a yet_o they_o be_v in_o sense_n affirmative_a only_o as_o deny_v the_o negation_n of_o mercy_n in_o god_n and_o of_o blindness_n in_o man._n animadversion_n lxxxxvii_n our_o adversary_n can_v agree_v among_o themselves_o what_o doctrine_n be_v protestancy_n and_o who_o ought_v to_o be_v true_o term_v protestant_n can_v their_o religion_n then_o be_v true_a and_o descend_v from_o heaven_n here_o than_o i_o will_v first_o show_v within_o what_o narrow_a limit_n our_o adversary_n do_v confine_v protestancy_n and_o the_o member_n of_o the_o protestant_a church_n next_o than_o i_o will_v discover_v such_o be_v the_o fluctuate_a and_o waver_a judgement_n of_o they_o herein_o how_o they_o be_v content_a at_o other_o time_n to_o extend_v and_o enlarge_v those_o bound_n by_o afford_v protestancy_n and_o the_o member_n thereof_o a_o great_a space_n or_o compass_v as_o i_o may_v say_v to_o expatiate_v and_o walk_v in_o and_o to_o begin_v d._n whitaker_n thus_o say_v of_o the_o papist_n i_o will_v 1_o will_v l._n 2._o contra_fw-la duraum_n sect._n 1_o not_o allow_v the_o very_a name_n of_o a_o lawful_a church_n unto_o the_o roman_a church_n because_o it_o have_v nothing_o which_o a_o true_a chu●●●_n ought_v to_o have_v the_o confession_n of_o ausburg_n exclude_v the_o anabaptist_n in_o these_o word_n we_o ●_o we_o cap._n ●_o condemn_v the_o anabaptist_n who_o disallow_v the_o baptism_n of_o infant_n and_o think_v they_o to_o be_v sa●●●_n without_o baptism_n to_o which_o sentence_n the_o confession_n of_o switzerland_n 20._o switzerland_n cap._n 20._o subscribe_v the_o arian_n be_v exclude_v from_o be_v protestant_n by_o the_o foresay_a confession_n of_o ausburg_n in_o these_o term_n we_o 1._o we_o act._n 1._o condemn_v all_o heresy_n rise_v against_o this_o article_n mean_v the_o article_n of_o the_o trinity_n as_o the_o manichee_n arian_n eunomian_o &c._n &c._n all_o heretic_n be_v exclude_v out_o of_o the_o number_n of_o protestant_n for_o thus_o d._n su●cliffe_n teach_v heretic_n 1._o heretic_n in_o his_o first_o book_n of_o the_o church_n c._n 1._o be_v not_o of_o the_o church_n meaning_n of_o the_o true_a church_n and_o consequent_o in_o his_o judgement_n of_o the_o protestant_a church_n with_o who_o agree_v d._n white_n say_v all_o 10._o all_o in_o his_o way_n to_o the_o church_n pag._n 10._o heretic_n teach_v the_o truth_n in_o some_o thing_n yet_o we_o deny_v they_o to_o be_v of_o the_o church_n of_o god_n that_o schismatic_n be_v not_o of_o the_o protestant_a church_n be_v teach_v for_o thus_o write_v d._n fulke_o church_n fulke_o of_o the_o succession_n of_o the_o church_n what_o skill_v it_o whether_o one_o be_v draw_v by_o heresy_n or_o schism_n from_o th●_n body_n of_o christ_n be_v subject_a to_o eternal_a
damnation_n and_o d._n whitaker_n thus_o aver_v it_o 9_o it_o controver_n 2._o q._n 5._o cap._n 9_o be_v false_a that_o heretical_a and_o schismatical_a church_n be_v true_a church_n thus_o far_o of_o our_o adversary_n exclude_v papist_n anabaptist_n arian_n heretic_n and_o schismatic_o from_o the_o protestant_a church_n and_o not_o acknowledge_v they_o to_o be_v member_n thereof_o nor_o their_o doctrine_n protestancy_n now_o we_o will_v observe_v what_o change_n and_o mutability_n of_o judgement_n herein_o our_o adversary_n show_v at_o other_o time_n in_o willing_o embrace_v all_o these_o former_a sort_n of_o man_n and_o some_o other_o also_o as_o good_a protestant_n and_o in_o state_n of_o salvation_n and_o first_o of_o the_o papist_n luther_n say_v in_o anabapt_n in_o in_o ep._n contra_fw-la anabapt_n the_o popery_n there_o be_v true_a christianity_n yea_o the_o kernel_n of_o christianity_n &_o many_o pious_a &_o great_a saint_n m._n hooker_n 1●8_n hooker_n l._n eccles_n pol._n 3._o c._n 1●8_n we_o glad_o acknowledge_v they_o of_o rome_n to_o be_v of_o the_o family_n of_o jesus_n christ_n and_o m._n bunny_n we_o 18._o we_o in_o his_o treatise_n of_o pacification_n sect_n 18._o be_v no_o several_a church_n from_o the_o papist_n nor_o they_o from_o us._n the_o anabaptist_n be_v admit_v for_o good_a protestant_n by_o oecolampadius_n say_v 63._o say_v l._n 2._o ep._n p._n 63._o baptism_n be_v a_o external_a thing_n which_o by_o law_n of_o charity_n may_v be_v dispense_v with_o and_o d._n 10._o d._n in_o his_o answer_n to_o the_o protest_v apol._n l._n 4_o cap._n 3._o sect_n 10._o morton_n we_o protestant_n judge_v the_o state_n of_o the_o anabaptist_n not_o to_o be_v utter_o desperate_a the_o arian_n be_v acknowledge_v by_o m._n morton_n to_o be_v of_o the_o same_o church_n of_o which_o the_o protestant_n be_v and_o he_o give_v his_o reason_n in_o these_o word_n because_o ●4_n because_o in_o his_o book_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o is●ael_n and_o the_o church_n pag._n ●4_n the_o arian_n hold_v the_o foundation_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o m._n hooker_n seem_v to_o intimate_v the_o same_o in_o these_o word_n the_o 181._o the_o eccles_n pol._n lib._n 4_o p._n 181._o arian_n in_o the_o reform_a church_n of_o poland_n etc._n etc._n hereby_o insinuate_v that_o those_o protestant_a church_n of_o poland_n do_v acknowledge_v the_o arian_n to_o be_v member_n of_o their_o church_n of_o idolater_n m._n hooker_n thus_o favourable_o write_v christian_n 1●0_o christian_n eccles_n pol._n l._n 3_o pag._n 1●0_o by_o external_a profession_n they_o be_v all_o who_o mark_n of_o recognizance_n have_v in_o it_o those_o thing_n which_o we_o have_v mention_v yea_o although_o they_o be_v impious_a idolater_n wicked_a h●tikes_n etc._n etc._n infidel_n be_v also_o in_o our_o aduersa●●●_n judgment_n member_n of_o a_o save_a churchy_n faith_n for_o thus_o write_v swinglius_n eth●●●_n 39_o eth●●●_n swingl_n ep_v &_o oecolam_n l._n 1._o p_o 39_o si_fw-la piam_fw-la mentem_fw-la domi_fw-la foverit_fw-la christianus_n 〈◊〉_d etiamsi_fw-la hristum_fw-la ignoret_fw-la and_o hereupon_o s●●glius_n conclude_v that_o 559._o that_o swing●_n tom_n 2._o fol._n 118._o &_o 559._o hercules_n socrates_n ●ristides_n be_v now_o in_o heaven_n as_o be_v in_o another_o place_n show_v final_o the_o protestant_n be_v 〈◊〉_d courteous_a as_o that_o they_o be_v content_a to_o ●●corporate_v antichrist_n within_o their_o church_n 〈◊〉_d state_n of_o salvation_n this_o i_o thus_o prove_v i●_n 〈◊〉_d overmuch_o know_v and_o diwlge_v that_o m●ny_a protestant_n do_v teach_v with_o full_a mouth_n that_o the_o pope_n be_v antichrist_n now_o then_o let_v 〈◊〉_d see_v how_o at_o other_o time_n they_o write_v of_o hi●_n who_o they_o hold_v to_o be_v antichrist_n and_o 〈◊〉_d religion_n antichristianity_n here_o than_o we_o f●●●_n d._n whitaker_n thus_o to_o acknowledge_v i_o will_v sanders_n will_v d_o white_a in_o his_o answer_n to_o the_o first_o demonstration_n of_o d._n sanders_n not_o say_v that_o from_o the_o time_n that_o papistry_n beg●●_n to_o be_v antichristianity_n the_o pope_n themse●●●_n have_v be_v all_o damn_a and_o yet_o d._n whitaker_n 〈◊〉_d where_o confident_o aver_v the_o pope_n to_o be_v antichrist_n in_o like_a sort_n m._n powell_n have_v the_o like_a sentence_n say_v i_o will_v sanders_n will_v in_o his_o answer_n to_o the_o last_o demonstration_n of_o d._n sanders_n in_o no_o wise_n say_v that_o all_o the_o pope_n from_o the_o time_n that_o papistry_n be_v first_o reveal_v to_o be_v antichristianity_n a●●_n damn_v thus_o much_o of_o this_o point_n whereby_o we_o may_v discern_v the_o wonderful_a and_o unheard_a mutability_n of_o our_o adversary_n judgement_n touch_v who_o be_v protestant_n and_o professor_n of_o that_o church_n wherein_o a_o man_n may_v be_v save_v a_o demonstration_n unanswerable_a ●●le_n and_o irrepliable_a to_o prove_v that_o the_o pro●●●●ant_a church_n and_o faith_n such_o as_o these_o for●●r_a man_n do_v restrain_v or_o enlarge_v it_o be_v 〈◊〉_d capable_a of_o salvation_n and_o how_o then_o can_v christian_n know_v if_o he_o will_v rely_v upon_o the_o augment_v of_o protestant_n herein_o to_o what_o 〈◊〉_d of_o protestant_n or_o within_o what_o church_n 〈◊〉_d may_v range_v himself_o for_o the_o salvation_n of_o 〈◊〉_d soul_n animadversion_n lxxxxviii_n ●n_o that_o there_o be_v many_o catholic_a article_n the_o which_o the_o jew_n before_o the_o com●ing_n of_o christ_n do_v believe_v therefore_o it_o follow_v evident_o that_o the_o say_v article_n cannot_v be_v repute_v to_o be_v innovation_n or_o late_o invent_v doctrine_n but_o as_o ancient_a as_o the_o ●ymes_n before_o our_o saviour_n incarnation_n i_o ●ill_v exemplify_v in_o some_o the_o book_n eccle●●asticus_n admit_v for_o the_o time_n it_o be_v not_o scripture_n speak_v direct_o of_o our_o saviour_n ●●scending_v into_o hell_n in_o those_o word_n where_o it_o ●s_v say_v in_o his_o person_n i_o 24._o i_o eccles_n 24._o will_v pierce_v through_o ●●e_v sour_a part_n of_o the_o earth_n i_o will_v look_v upon_o all_o such_o as_o be_v a_o sleep_n and_o will_v lighten_v all_o they_o that_o ●●ust_v in_o the_o lord_n a_o say_v so_o pertinent_a for_o proof_n of_o limbus_n patrum_fw-la that_o d._n whitaker_n 5●7_n whitaker_n contra_fw-la duraeum_n l._n 8_o pag._n 5●7_n acknowledge_v the_o true_a sense_n thereof_o avoyd_v it_o by_o say_v the_o book_n be_v not_o canonical_a which_o at_o this_o present_a be_v impertinent_a since_o here_o i_o seek_v only_o to_o prove_v the_o ●●uth_n of_o diverse_a of_o our_o catholic_a point_n as_o be_v believe_v by_o the_o ancient_a jew_n before_o our_o saviour_n time_n in_o their_o writing_n whether_o canonical_a or_o not_o canonical_a touch_v prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a it_o be_v warrant_v by_o the_o example_n of_o judas_n 2._o judas_n machab_n 2._o machabaeus_n the_o true_a servant_n of_o god_n as_o also_o be_v teach_v by_o rabbi_n simeon_n who_o live_v before_o christ_n and_o diverse_a other_o ancient_a rabbye_n rabbi_n simeon_n thus_o write_v of_o such_o as_o be_v temporal_o punish_v after_o this_o life_n after_o genesis_n after_o in_o lib._n zoar._n in_o cap_n 13._o genesis_n they_o be_v purge_v from_o the_o filth_n of_o their_o sin_n then_o do_v god_n cause_v they_o to_o ascend_v out_o of_o that_o place_n touch_v god_n induration_n or_o harden_v of_o pharaos_n hart_n the_o jewish_a rabin_n so_o conspire_v in_o affirm_v with_o we_o the_o same_o to_o be_v by_o god_n permission_n only_o and_o not_o by_o his_o work_n that_o peter_n 9_o peter_n peter_n martyr_n in_o epist._n ad_fw-la roman_n c._n 9_o martyr_n and_o munster_n 7._o munster_n munster_n in_o annot._n in_o exod._n c._n 7._o do_v according_o acknowledge_v this_o exposition_n concern_v freewill_n that_o place_n in_o ecc●esiasticus_fw-la 1●_n ecc●esiasticus_fw-la ecclesiast_fw-la 1●_n to_o wit_n say_v not_o thou_o he_o have_v c●●sed_v i_o to_o err_v if_o thou_o will_v thou_o shall_v observe_v the_o commandment_n he_o have_v set_v water_n and_o fire_n before_o thou_o stretch_v out_o thy_o hand_n to_o which_o thou_o will_v before_o man_n be_v life_n and_o death_n good_a &_o eu●●●_n what_o like_v he_o shall_v be_v give_v he_o this_o testimony_n i_o say_v be_v so_o evident_a for_o freewill_n that_o d._n whitaker_n in_o answer_n thereto_o reject_v the_o authority_n say_v de_fw-fr loco_fw-la 25._o loco_fw-la in_o resp_v ad_fw-la ras_fw-la camp_n rat_n 1_o p._n 25._o ecclesiasticiparùm_fw-la laboro_fw-la etc._n etc._n i_o make_v small_a account_n of_o ecclesiasticus_fw-la philo_z the_o learned_a jew_n who_o live_v in_o christ_n his_o time_n thus_o write_v man_n immutabelis_fw-la man_n philo_z in_o lib._n quod_fw-la deus_fw-la fit_a immutabelis_fw-la have_v freewill_n to_o which_o purpose_n be_v extant_a the_o oracle_n in_o deuteronomy_n i_o have_v place_v before_o thou_o life_n and_o death_n good_a and_o evil_a choose_v life_n concern_v angel_n &_o saint_n the_o book_n of_o tobias_n write_v before_o christ_n be_v so_o plain_a 5._o plain_a tob
5._o with_o we_o touch_v patronage_n and_o intercession_n of_o angel_n that_o therefore_o d._n whitaker_n do_v according_o confess_v and_o say_v thereof_o jllum_fw-la 15._o jllum_fw-la whitak_n in_o respon_n ad_fw-la rat_n camp_n rat_n 1._o p._n 15._o verò_fw-la tobiae_fw-la raphaelem_fw-la etc._n etc._n little_o do_v we_o regard_v the_o example_n of_o raphaell_n the_o angel_n mention_v in_o toby_n etc._n etc._n all_o this_o be_v different_a from_o the_o canonical_a scripture_n etc._n etc._n concern_v the_o force_n of_o merit_n of_o alm_n and_o other_o good_a work_n proceed_v from_o true_a faith_n in_o the_o messiah_n the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o ancient_a jews_n be_v deliver_v in_o the_o book_n of_o toby●_n alm_n 1●_n alm_n tob._n 1●_n do_v deliver_v from_o death_n and_o do_v purge_v all_o sin_n and_o in_o the_o foresay_a book_n of_o ecclesiasticus_fw-la as_o water_n 3._o water_n eccles_n 3._o quence_v burn_a fire_n so_o alm_n expiate_v sin_n touch_v unwritten_a tradition_n 2._o tradition_n orig._n hom_n 5._o in_o numer_n hilar._n in_o psalm_n 2._o origen_n and_o hilary_n do_v affirm_v that_o moses_n do_v leave_v many_o thing_n unwritten_a the_o knowledge_n whereof_o be_v continue_v by_o tradition_n and_o rabbi_n judas_n affirm_v the_o same_o of_o moses_n a_o thing_n so_o evident_a that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o jew_n be_v confess_v by_o patrum_fw-la by_o write_v upon_o the_o book_n in_o capitulis_fw-la patrum_fw-la paulus_n phagius_n the_o protestant_n that_o monastical_a life_n be_v not_o altogether_o want_v but_o in_o some_o sort_n profess_v among_o the_o ancient_a jew_n be_v witness_v by_o josephus_n thus_o write_v the_o ●_o the_o joseph_n antiquita●um_fw-la judaicarum_fw-la l._n 18._o c._n ●_o righteousness_n of_o the_o essenes_n be_v marvellous_a etc._n etc._n they_o enjoy_v their_o riches_n in_o common_a etc._n etc._n and_o in_o this_o course_n above_o four_o thousand_o man_n do_v live_v have_v neither_o wife_n nor_o servant_n etc._n etc._n and_o in_o another_o place_n trial_o 7._o trial_o joseph_n l._n de_fw-fr bello_fw-la judaito_fw-la l._n 2._o cap._n 7._o be_v have_v of_o a_o man_n continency_n and_o his_o other_o manner_n be_v for_o two_o year_n try_v and_o then_o he_o be_v take_v into_o the_o company_n last_o to_o omit_v for_o great_a brevity_n the_o doctrine_n of_o vow_n the_o doctrine_n of_o one_o visible_a high_a priest_n head_n of_o the_o church_n in_o those_o jewish_a time_n the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o jew_n in_o remit_v the_o end_n of_o controversye_n not_o to_o the_o scripture_n but_o to_o a_o certain_a visible_a and_o lively_a judge_n the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o jew_n concern_v confession_n of_o sin_n all_o these_o be_v relate_v by_o 3._o by_o gala._n in_o areanis_fw-la cathol_n veritatis_fw-la l._n 10_o v._n 3._o galatinus_n i_o will_v close_v this_o passage_n with_o melchisedech_n his_o offering_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n in_o sacrifice_n and_o the_o prefiguration_n thereby_o of_o our_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n of_o this_o point_n rabbi_n phinees_n thus_o say_v in_o numer_n in_o phinees_n in_o cap._n 28._o numer_n the_o time_n of_o the_o messiah_n all_o sacrifice_n shall_v cease_v but_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n shall_v not_o cease_v etc._n etc._n as_o it_o be_v say_v psalm_n 100_o thou_o be_v a_o priest_n for_o ever_o according_a to_o the_o order_n of_o melchisedech_n rabbi_n gen._n rabbi_n hasardan_n in_o bereschit_n rabbi_n ad_fw-la cap._n 14._o gen._n hasardan_n &_o rabbi_n genes_n rabbi_n samuel_n in_o bereschit_n rabbi_n ad_fw-la cap._n 14._o genes_n samuel_n say_v the_o like_a of_o melchisedech_n his_o offer_v up_o of_o bread_n and_o wine_n in_o figure_n of_o the_o sacrifice_n now_o in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n a_o point_n so_o evident_a that_o 89._o that_o bibliander_n de_fw-fr ss_z trinitote_fw-la l._n 2._o pag._n 89._o bibliander_n the_o remarkable_a protestant_n do_v not_o doubt_v to_o confess_v the_o same_o of_o the_o old_a jewish_a rabin_n thus_o far_o of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o ancient_a jew_n before_o christ_n his_o incarnation_n which_o doctrine_n we_o catholik_o at_o this_o day_n hold_v all_o which_o doctrine_n be_v mere_o dogmatic_a point_n without_o any_o type_n or_o reference_n to_o christ_n his_o come_n that_o only_o of_o melchisedech_n except_v and_o therefore_o it_o can_v be_v answer_v that_o the_o say_v doctrine_n shall_v now_o cease_v upon_o our_o saviour_n come_v in_o flesh_n into_o the_o world_n as_o some_o ignorant_a man_n will_v suggest_v but_o it_o must_v needs_o be_v that_o the_o say_v doctrine_n if_o they_o be_v true_a than_o they_o must_v be_v also_o true_a now_o by_o which_o so_o many_o foresay_a example_n of_o our_o catholic_a faith_n thus_o affirm_v by_o the_o ancient_a jew_n it_o be_v make_v most_o certain_a that_o our_o religion_n ●s_v not_o new_a or_o late_o invent_v but_o most_o ancient_a and_o undoubted_o apostolic_a animadversion_n lxxxxix_n it_o be_v a_o most_o impudent_a assertion_n of_o d._n field_n who_o thus_o write_v we_o 76._o we_o d._n f●●ld_a in_o his_o book_n of_o the_o church_n l._n 3._o c_o 8._o p._n 76._o firm_o believe_v that_o all_o the_o church_n of_o the_o world_n wherein_o our_o father_n live_v and_o dye_v to_o have_v be_v the_o true_a protestant_n churches_n of_o god_n etc._n etc._n and_o that_o they_o which_o teach_v embrace_a and_o believe_v those_o damnable_a error_n which_o the_o romanist_n do_v defend_v against_o we_o be_v only_o a_o faction_n but_o see_v now_o this_o most_o vast_a lie_n be_v control_v first_o then_o d._n jewel_n thus_o acknowledge_v the_o 4._o the_o jewel_n in_o his_o apology_n of_o the_o church_n part_n 4._o c._n 4._o truth_n be_v unknown_a at_o that_o time_n and_o unheard_a of_o when_o martin_n luther_n and_o hulderick_n swinglius_n first_o come_v unto_o the_o knowledge_n and_o preach_v of_o the_o gospel_n and_o therefore_o hereford_n therefore_o bu●ter_n in_o ep._n anno_fw-la 36._o ad_fw-la episc_n hereford_n bucer_n style_v luther_n the_o first_o apostle_n to_o we_o of_o the_o reform_a doctrine_n and_o schlusselburg_n the_o great_a protestant_n thus_o conte_v the_o same_o it_o 130._o it_o in_o theolog._n calu._n l._n 2._o fol._n 130._o be_v impudence_n to_o affirm_v that_o many_o lean_v man_n in_o germany_n before_o luther_n do_v hold_v t●●_n doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n yea_o luther_n himself_o thus_o vaunt_v of_o himself_o christum_fw-la argentinens_fw-la christum_fw-la luther_n ep._n ad_fw-la argentinens_fw-la à_fw-la nobis_fw-la primo_fw-la vulgatum_fw-la audemus_fw-la gloriari_fw-la and_o true_o the_o force_n of_o reason_n assure_v we_o that_o there_o be_v no_o protestant_n at_o or_o immediate_o before_o the_o break_n out_o of_o luther_n for_o if_o any_o be_v why_o do_v they_o lie_v hide_v and_o unknown_a at_o luther_n rise_n no_o other_o pretext_n can_v be_v allege_v but_o fear_v of_o persecution_n but_o this_o can_v be_v allege_v for_o the_o protestant_n if_o any_o than_o be_v may_v secure_o step_v out_o and_o join_v themselves_o with_o luther_n consider_v that_o then_o diverse_a magistrate_n and_o commonwealth_n have_v open_o undertake_v the_o patronage_n of_o luther_n doctrine_n and_o religion_n animadversion_n c._n in_o all_o point_n of_o faith_n the_o authority_n of_o the_o private_a spirit_n be_v to_o be_v contemn_v as_o beget_v nothing_o but_o noveltye_n and_o innovation_n and_o let_v each_o good_a catholic_a anchor_n his_o judgement_n upon_o the_o authority_n of_o christ_n visible_a church_n and_o the_o chief_a head_n thereof_o assure_v himself_o that_o although_o simon_n the_o fisher_n be_v not_o able_a to_o determine_v matter_n of_o faith_n yet_o that_o simon_n peter_n and_o his_o successor_n assist_v with_o competency_n of_o mean_n have_v ever_o a_o impeacheable_a sovereignty_n grant_v to_o they_o and_o a_o delegated_a authority_n from_o christ_n himself_o for_o the_o absolute_a discuss_n and_o decide_v of_o all_o controversye_n in_o religion_n tu_fw-la 16._o tu_fw-la math._n 16._o es_fw-la petrus_n &_o super_fw-la hanc_fw-la petram_fw-la aedificabo_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la meam_fw-la &_o porte_fw-fr jnferi_fw-la non_fw-la praevalabunt_fw-la adversus_fw-la eum_fw-la and_o true_o if_o the_o visible_a church_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o supreme_a judge_n thereof_o can_v err_v in_o matter_n of_o faith_n how_o can_v god_n be_v excuse_v from_o cruelty_n by_o threaten_v to_o all_o man_n eternal_a perdition_n if_o we_o be_v not_o obedient_a to_o the_o church_n of_o god_n dic_fw-la 18._o dic_fw-la math_n 18._o ecclesiae_fw-la &_o si_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la non_fw-la audierit_fw-la sit_fw-la sicut_fw-la ethnicus_fw-la &_o publicanus_fw-la furthermore_o as_o the_o apostle_n say_v 8._o say_v hebr._n 8._o our_o testament_n be_v establish_v in_o better_a promise_n etc._n etc._n meaning_n then_o the_o testament_n of_o the_o jew_n but_o if_o it_o be_v say_v in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o old_a law_n that_o he_o who_o 17._o who_o deuteron_fw-gr 17._o presumptuous_o refuse_v to_o obey_v the_o commandment_n of_o
the_o pry_a that_o by_o decree_n of_o the_o judge_n that_o man_n shall_v die_v what_o punishment_n they_o be_v he_o to_o undergo_v who_o in_o matter_n of_o faith_n and_o religion_n contemn_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o high_a prye_v of_o christ_n his_o church_n advance_v his_o own_o private_a judgement_n above_o the_o say_a authority_n animadversion_n ci._n it_o be_v most_o certain_a that_o luther_n himself_o be_v not_o a_o perfect_a and_o entire_a protestant_n such_o i_o mean_v as_o the_o present_a church_n of_o england_n acknowledge_v for_o a_o true_a protestant_n my_o reason_n be_v these_o first_o because_o luther_n after_o his_o rise_n and_o ever_o unto_o his_o death_n retain_v and_o believe_v diverse_a of_o our_o catholic_a doctrine_n disclaim_v from_o by_o the_o protestant_n of_o england_n second_o because_o luther_n teach_v and_o maintain_v several_a heresy_n i_o mean_v heresy_n even_o in_o the_o iudgme●●_n of_o our_o now_o protestant_n to_o begin_v with_o the_o first_o branch_n luther_n ever_o maintain_v to_o h●s_n death_n the_o real_a presence_n as_o the_o whole_a wor●●_n know_v and_o therefore_o his_o follower_n in_o th●●_n doctrine_n be_v call_v for_o distinction_n lake_n lutheran_n by_o swinglius_n and_o caluin_n luther_n teach_v the_o doctrine_n of_o 30._o of_o luther_n l._n de_fw-fr assertionibus_fw-la art_n 30._o evangelicall_a counsel_n to_o wit_n that_o a_o man_n may_v do_v more_o then_o that_o he_o be_v command_v luther_n teach_v the_o doctrine_n of_o purgatory_n of_o which_o point_n see_v tom._n 1._o wittenberg_n 〈◊〉_d jndulgentijs_n and_o answerable_o to_o this_o ground_n he_o be_v confess_v by_o cultu_fw-la by_o vrbanus_n regius_n in_o 1_o part_n operum_fw-la formulae_fw-la cautè_fw-la loquendi_fw-la de_fw-fr sanct_a cultu_fw-la vrbanus_n regi●s_n a_o protestant_n to_o defend_v prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a luther_n defend_v prayer_n to_o saint_n of_o which_o point_n he_o thus_o write_v de_fw-fr spalat_n de_fw-fr luther_n in_o purgat_fw-la quorundam_fw-la articulorum_fw-la in_o epist_n ad_fw-la gregorium_fw-la spalat_n intercissione_n dinorum_n cum_fw-la tota_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la christiana_n sentio_fw-la &_o iudico_fw-la sanctos_fw-la à_fw-la nobis_fw-la honorandos_fw-la esse_fw-la atque_fw-la indicandos_fw-mi luther_n teach_v and_o approve_v the_o use_n of_o jmage_n as_o be_v witness_v by_o beza_n praef_n beza_n beza_n in_o resp_n ad_fw-la colloq_fw-la montisbelg_n par●_n altera_fw-la in_o praef_n touch_v the_o make_v the_o sign_n of_o the_o cross_n upon_o our_o forehead_n johannes_n creucli●●_n a_o lutheran_n thus_o write_v cùm_fw-la 118._o cùm_fw-la crevelius_n in_o hi●_n refut_o caeremoni●rum_fw-la missae_fw-la print_v magdeburg_n 163._o pag_n 118._o imus_fw-la cu●●tum_fw-la sine_fw-la surgimus_fw-la è_fw-la lecto_fw-la cruse_n nos_fw-la iuxta_fw-la l●theri_fw-la &_o altorum_fw-la piorum_fw-la institutionc●●_n signamus_fw-la final_o to_o omit_v some_o other_o point_n wherein_o luther_n never_o dissent_v from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n luther_n ever_o mantain_v that_o the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n be_v monarchiall_a &_o neither_o aristocratical_a nor_o popular_a as_o appear_v out_o of_o his_o own_o 107._o own_o vide_fw-la luther_n in_o loc_n com._n class_n 1._o c._n 3._o 7._o pag._n 107._o word_n now_o to_o come_v to_o relate_v luther_n heresy_n and_o such_o as_o be_v repute_v for_o heresy_n and_o some_o of_o they_o for_o blasphemy_n both_o by_o catholics_n and_o protestant_n which_o he_o ever_o maintain_v without_o any_o after_o retraction_n i_o first_o allege_v his_o impious_a doctrine_n touch_v the_o most_o bless_a trinity_n concern_v which_o he_o thus_o speak_v 474._o speak_v so_o relate_v swinglius_n of_o luther_n so_o speak_v to_o 2._o ad_fw-la respon_n &_o confut_o luther_n fol._n 474._o the_o divinity_n be_v threefold_a as_o the_o three_o person_n be_v etc._n etc._n and_o according_a to_o this_o he_o expunge_v out_o of_o the_o litany_n this_o sentence_n holy_a 1543._o holy_a luth._o in_o euchir_n precum_fw-la anno_fw-la 1543._o trinity_n one_o very_a god_n have_v mercy_n upon_o we_o and_o he_o further_o say_v anima_fw-la 1551._o anima_fw-la luth_n contra_fw-la jacobum_fw-la laetomum_fw-la tom_n 1._o wittemberg_fw-mi latinê_fw-la edit_fw-la anno_o 1551._o mea_fw-la odit_fw-la homoousion_n or_o consubstantialis_fw-la brief_o luther_n blasphemy_n be_v so_o odious_a &_o execrable_a against_o the_o b._n trinity_n that_o swinglius_n lutheri_fw-la swinglius_n swinglius_n tom_fw-mi 2._o in_o respon_n ad_fw-la confutat_fw-la lutheri_fw-la do_v purposely_o write_v against_o luther_n touch_v this_o very_a point_n touch_v the_o event_n of_o thing_n luther_n hold_v contrary_a to_o all_o christian_a faith_n that_o all_o thing_n come_v to_o pass_v through_o a_o certain_a stoical_a and_o fatal_a necessity_n thus_o write_v hereof_o nullius_fw-la 30._o nullius_fw-la luther_n in_o assert_v damnat_fw-la per_fw-la leonem_fw-la decimum_fw-la art_n 30._o est_fw-la in_o manu_fw-la etc._n etc._n it_o be_v in_o no_o man_n power_n to_o think_v good_a or_o evil_a but_o all_o thing_n as_o wicleffs_n article_n condemn_v at_o constance_n do_v right_o teach_v proceed_v from_o absolute_a necessity_n luther_n teach_v a_o heresy_n whereby_o the_o propagation_n of_o christian_a religion_n be_v much_o hinder_v to_o wit_n that_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a to_o wage_v war_n against_o the_o turk_n his_o word_n be_v praeliari_fw-la 34._o praeliari_fw-la luth_n in_o tom_n 2._o wittenberg_n &_o in_o assert_v damnat_fw-la per_fw-la leonem_fw-la decimum_fw-la assert_v 34._o contra_fw-la turcas_fw-la est_fw-la repugnare_fw-la deo_fw-la visitanti_fw-la iniquitates_fw-la nostras_fw-la per_fw-la illos_fw-la luther_n deny_v all_o temporal_a magistrate_n thus_o teach_v hereof_o among_o germ._n among_o luther_n de_fw-fr saeculari_fw-la potestate_fw-la in_o ●●_o 6_o germ._n christian_n no_o man_n can_v or_o aught_o to_o be_v a_o magistrate_n but_o every_o one_o be_v to_o another_o equal_o subject_a touch_v faith_n and_o good_a work_n luther_n thus_o endoctrinate_v his_o follower_n fides_n 3._o fides_n luther_n to_o 1_o propos_fw-fr 3._o nisi_fw-la sit_fw-la sine_fw-la etc._n etc._n except_o faith_n be_v without_o good_a work_n it_o do_v not_o justify_v nay_o it_o be_v not_o faith_n and_o further_o no_o ●76_n no_o luther_n in_o his_o sermon_n english_v pag_n ●76_n work_n be_v disalow_v by_o god_n except_o the_o author_n thereof_o be_v disalow_v before_o luther_n further_o teach_v as_o d._n covell_n witness_v that_o 101._o that_o these_o be_v d._n covells_n word_n in_o defence_n of_o m._n hooker_n art_n 15._o p._n 101._o the_o sacrament_n be_v effectual_a though_o they_o be_v administer_v by_o satan_n himself_o of_o which_o point_n hospinian_n the_o protestant_n thus_o also_o write_v lutherus_n 14._o lutherus_n in_o hist_o sacr._n part_n altera_fw-la fol._n 14._o co●sque_fw-la progreditur_fw-la etc._n etc._n luther_n proceed_v so_o far_o herein_o that_o he_o maintain_v the_o sacrament_n to_o be_v a_o true_a sacrament_n etiamsi_fw-la è_fw-it diabolo_fw-it conficeretur_fw-la though_o it_o be_v to_o be_v consecrate_v by_o the_o devil_n to_o conclude_v luther_n so_o disualewed_a the_o sufficiency_n of_o christ_n suffer_v in_o body_n for_o we_o as_o that_o he_o most_o blasphemous_o teach_v that_o christ_n do_v not_o suffer_v only_o in_o body_n but_o also_o his_o divinity_n suffer_v for_o we_o his_o word_n hereof_o be_v these_o cùm_fw-la domini_fw-la cùm_fw-la luther_n in_o confess_v maiore_fw-la in_o caena_n domini_fw-la credo_fw-la quod_fw-la sola_fw-la humana_fw-la natura_fw-la pro_fw-la i_o passa_fw-la est_fw-la christus_fw-la vilis_fw-la nec_fw-la magni_fw-la praetij_fw-la saluator_fw-la est_fw-la etc._n etc._n if_o i_o believe_v that_o only_o the_o humane_a nature_n suffer_v for_o i_o than_o be_v christ_n a_o saviour_n but_o of_o a_o base_a &_o small_a worth_n and_o himself_o need_v a_o saviour_n thus_o far_o now_o in_o demonstration_n that_o luther_n be_v not_o a_o entire_a protestant_n and_o such_o as_o be_v allow_v by_o the_o present_a church_n of_o england_n animadversion_n cii_o two_o thing_n among_o other_o concur_v as_o be_v in_o this_o last_o animadversion_n exemplify_v in_o luther_n to_o make_v a_o perfect_a protestant_n to_o wit_n that_o he_o do_v maintain_v all_o chief_a point_n of_o protestancy_n thus_o he_o be_v not_o to_o hold_v only_o some_o few_o point_n of_o prorestancy_n and_o in_o the_o rest_n be_v more_o in_o number_n and_o of_o great_a importance_n to_o partake_v with_o the_o catholic_n the_o second_o thing_n necessary_a to_o a_o protestant_n that_o he_o do_v not_o hold_v pertinacious_o any_o main_n heresy_n or_o paradox_n whole_o impugn_a and_o contradict_v both_o by_o catholics_n and_o protestant_n for_o this_o man_n in_o this_o respect_n be_v rather_o to_o be_v style_v a_o open_a heretic_n than_o a_o protestant_n even_o in_o the_o censure_n of_o the_o protestant_n themselves_o here_o now_o i_o aver_v that_o this_o animadversion_n clear_o evict_v that_o husse_n waldo_n wicliffe_n and_o the_o rest_n so_o much_o urge_v for_o protestant_n for_o the_o proof_n of_o the_o visibility_n of_o the_o protestant_a church_n in_o those_o age_n be_v no_o protestant_n at_o all_o and_o consequent_o that_o the_o protestant_a church_n
body_n and_o that_o christ_n be_v true_a man._n thus_o far_o osiander_n of_o the_o albigenses_n in_o the_o place_n cite_v in_o the_o margin_n i_o will_v conclude_v with_o berengarius_fw-la who_o live_v anno_o 1051._o who_o be_v challenge_v for_o a_o 23._o a_o act._n mon._n pa._n 23._o protestant_n for_o his_o denial_n of_o transubstantiation_n though_o he_o after_o recant_v this_o his_o heresy_n now_o berengarius_fw-la do_v hold_v diverse_a heresye_n so_o as_o the_o protestant_a o●eolampadius_n 710._o o●eolampadius_n in_o oecolam_n &_o swinglij_fw-la epistolis_fw-la l._n 3._o pag._n 710._o thus_o write_v of_o he_o berengarius_fw-la nonnulla_fw-la affirmat_fw-la adversus_fw-la baptismum_fw-la parnulorum_fw-la &_o coniugium_fw-la again_o damnata_fw-la est_fw-la berengarij_fw-la opinio_fw-la sacerdotio_fw-la christiano_n parum_fw-la nimis_fw-la tribuen●_n thus_o far_o of_o all_o these_o former_a heretic_n to_o wit_n hus_n wicleff_n waldo_n and_o the_o rest_n whereby_o the_o indifferent_a reader_n may_v rest_v assure_v that_o they_o can_v with_o any_o just_a show_n of_o reason_n and_o judgement_n be_v allege_v for_o protestant_n as_o our_o adversary_n be_v accustom_v to_o allege_v they_o for_o the_o prove_v of_o the_o visibility_n of_o the_o protetestant_a church_n in_o former_a age_n animadversion_n civ_o admit_v for_o the_o time_n that_o all_o these_o former_a innovatour_n be_v entire_a protestant_n in_o all_o point_n not_o compart_v with_o the_o catholic_n in_o any_o point_n of_o the_o roman_a religion_n admit_v also_o that_o not_o any_o of_o they_o do_v hold_v any_o one_o explorate_a heresy_n &_o by_o all_o side_n condemn_v yet_o be_v the_o example_n of_o they_o most_o insufficient_a for_o the_o support_v of_o the_o protestant_n church_n visibility_n my_o reason_n be_v these_o first_n the_o scripture_n other_o scripture_n esay_n 60._o &_o 40.1_o timoth._n eph._n 4._o besides_o many_o other_o do_v prove_v that_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n must_v not_o at_o one_o only_a time_n or_o other_o but_o in_o all_o time_n and_o in_o all_o age_n without_o the_o least_o interruption_n or_o discontinuance_n much_o less_o without_o interruption_n of_o many_o hundred_o year_n together_o be_v most_o visible_a and_o conspicuous_a this_o be_v grant_v i_o then_o demand_v what_o protestant_n can_v be_v allege_v live_v between_o anno_fw-la six_o hundred_o and_o seven_o and_o anno_fw-la 1220._o here_o be_v about_o six_o hundred_o year_n between_o these_o two_o time_n during_o all_o which_o period_n as_o also_o for_o every_o year_n thereof_o our_o adversary_n stand_v oblige_v to_o allege_v protestant_n for_o the_o continuance_n of_o the_o visibility_n of_o the_o protestant_a church_n but_o this_o they_o be_v not_o able_a to_o effect_v and_o therefore_o d._n fulke_o with_o just_a cause_n thus_o complain_v of_o the_o inuisibility_n of_o the_o protestant_a church_n ●0_n church_n d._n fu●ke_n in_o his_o answer_n to_o a_o counterfeit_n catholik●_n pag._n ●0_n the_o church_n in_o the_o time_n of_o boniface_n the_o three_o which_o be_v anno_o 607._o be_v invisible_a and_o flee_v into_o the_o wilderness_n there_o to_o remain_v a_o long_a season_n second_o all_o the_o former_a man_n i_o mean_v husse_n wicleffe_n waldo_n etc._n etc._n be_v original_o catholic_n and_o after_o by_o forge_v of_o new_a doctrine_n they_o divide_v themselves_o from_o the_o church_n then_o in_o be_v and_o so_o thereby_o they_o iustify_v in_o themselves_o those_o word_n of_o s._n john_n 9_o john_n joan._n 9_o they_o go_v out_o of_o us._n now_o this_o departure_n or_o go_v out_o of_o the_o church_n impli_v in_o lieu_n of_o the_o continuance_n and_o visibility_n of_o their_o church_n a_o interruption_n discontinuance_n &_o defection_n of_o their_o church_n and_o consequent_o a_o want_n of_o the_o visibility_n of_o the_o say_a church_n since_o it_o infallible_o prove_v that_o the_o doctrine_n teach_v by_o these_o man_n after_o their_o departure_n be_v not_o teach_v by_o the_o church_n afore_o in_o be_v for_o if_o they_o have_v be_v teach_v by_o it_o these_o man_n need_v not_o to_o leave_v the_o then_o know_a church_n for_o their_o defend_n and_o teach_v of_o the_o say_a doctrine_n three_o the_o protestant_n will_v say_v no_o doubt_n that_o husse_n wicleffe_n etc._n etc._n do_v preach_v the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o administer_v the_o sacrament_n hear_v than_o i_o demand_v see_v no_o man_n take_v to_o himself_o the_o honour_n of_o priesthood_n but_o he_o that_o be_v call_v 5._o call_v heb●_n 5._o of_o god_n as_o aaron_n be_v who_o then_o do_v call_v husse_n wicleff_n berengarius_fw-la the_o waldenses_n etc._n etc._n to_o preach_v the_o word_n and_o administer_v the_o sacrament_n or_o by_o who_o be_v they_o send_v but_o here_o our_o adversary_n be_v at_o a_o stand_n fly_v to_o a_o immediate_a imaginary_a and_o aery_a call_v for_o thus_o do_v caluin_n seek_v to_o salve_v this_o difficulty_n quia_fw-la 23._o quia_fw-la lascit_fw-la the_o protestant_n recite_v this_o say_n of_o caluin_n lib._n the_o russor_n muscovit_fw-la etc._n etc._n religione_fw-la c._n 23._o papae_fw-la tyrannide_fw-la etc._n etc._n because_o through_o the_o tyranny_n of_o the_o pope_n true_a succession_n of_o ordination_n be_v break_v of_o therefore_o we_o stand_v in_o need_n of_o a_o new_a course_n herein_o and_o this_o function_n or_o call_n be_v altogether_o extraordinary_a with_o who_o agree_v m._n perkins_n say_v the_o 916._o the_o m._n perkins_n in_o his_o work_n print_v 1605._o fol._n 916._o call_n of_o wicliffe_n husse_n luther_n oecolampadius_n peter_n martyr_n etc._n etc._n be_v extraordinary_a a_o exorbitant_a and_o fantastical_a conceit_n animadversion_n cv_o there_o be_v two_o reason_n among_o other_o which_o evident_o prove_v that_o our_o adversary_n be_v conscious_a and_o guilty_a of_o their_o own_o church_n inuisibility_n one_o in_o that_o they_o discover_v a_o wonderful_a reluctation_n &_o backwardness_n when_o they_o be_v press_v by_o the_o catholic_n to_o name_v the_o protestant_n live_v in_o such_o and_o such_o age_n sortable_o hereto_o we_o find_v d._n fulke_o thus_o to_o complain_v proffer_n 89._o proffer_n fulke_o de_fw-fr success_n eccles_n p._n 89._o i_o iubes_fw-la toto_fw-la orb_n latitantes_fw-la &_o vah_o quam_fw-la iniquum_fw-la postulas_fw-la thou_o will_v we_o to_o produce_v and_o name_v those_o man_n who_o do_v lie_v hide_v throughout_o the_o world_n how_o unjust_a a_o thing_n do_v thou_o here_o demand_v and_o d._n wotton_n complain_v in_o the_o like_a manner_n thus_o conclude_v prove_v 11._o prove_v in_o his_o answer_n to_o a_o popish_a pamphlet_n p._n 11._o you_o that_o our_o religion_n be_v not_o where_o held_n this_o stand_v upon_o you_o to_o disprove_v which_o when_o you_o do_v by_o particular_a record_n you_o shall_v have_v particular_a answer_n then_o which_o what_o can_v be_v first_o more_o absurd_o speak_v as_o expect_v record_n of_o thing_n which_o never_o be_v in_o be_v he_o furthermore_o transfer_v the_o part_n of_o prove_v upon_o catholic_n to_o which_o himself_o and_o his_o fellow_n only_o stand_v oblige_v the_o second_o reason_n discover_v their_o tergiversation_n herein_o be_v in_o that_o when_o they_o be_v press_v to_o instance_n in_o protestant_n for_o several_a age_n they_o in_o lieu_n of_o instance_a fly_n to_o the_o scripture_n then_o dispute_v the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n must_v ever_o be_v visible_a but_o they_o be_v the_o true_a church_n as_o be_v prove_v out_o of_o the_o scripture_n therefore_o their_o church_n be_v ever_o visible_a a_o most_o strange_a and_o despair_a circulation_n animadversion_n cvi_o the_o like_a guiltiness_n of_o our_o adversary_n be_v show_v touch_v the_o suppose_a change_n of_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n for_o though_o this_o if_o any_o such_o change_n be_v be_v to_o be_v prove_v as_o be_v matter_n of_o fact_n from_o history_n yet_o our_o adversary_n disclaim_v from_o all_o history_n herein_o for_o d._n whitaker_n thus_o write_v it_o be_v not_o 177._o not_o whitak_n contra_fw-la duraeum_n p._n 177._o needful_a to_o search_v out_o of_o history_n the_o begin_n of_o this_o change_n and_o again_o it_o be_v 478_o be_v whitak_n contra_fw-la duraeum_n p._n 478_o sufficient_a by_o compare_v the_o popish_a opinion_n with_o the_o scripture_n to_o discover_v the_o disparity_n of_o faith_n between_o they_o and_o we_o and_o as_o for_o historiographer_n we_o give_v they_o liberty_n to_o write_v what_o they_o will_n thus_o bring_v the_o question_n as_o they_o do_v above_o touch_v the_o visibility_n of_o the_o protestant_a church_n to_o the_o scripture_n and_o their_o own_o interpretation_n of_o the_o say_a scripture_n which_o disclaim_v of_o they_o from_o history_n herein_o be_v most_o unusual_a and_o unaccustomed_a since_o it_o have_v be_v ever_o the_o office_n of_o historiographer_n &_o general_a counsel_n to_o register_v and_o record_v any_o new_a arise_v heresy_n or_o change_v in_o faith_n and_o religion_n animadversion_n cvii_o it_o can_v be_v deny_v but_o that_o a_o catholic_a may_v common_o become_v soon_o
tertullianus_n 9_o tertullianus_n ofl._n and._n cent._n 33._o c._n 9_o approbavit_fw-la oblationem_fw-la pro_fw-la ●●junctis_fw-la tertullian_n approve_v of_o oblation_n for_o the_o d●ad_a osiander_n here_o mean_v the_o oblation_n of_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n in_o further_a confirmation_n whereof_o we_o find_v d._n fulke_o thus_o to_o write_v tertullian_n 3●3_n tertullian_n d._n ●ulk_n in_o his_o confutation_n of_o purgatory_n pag._n 361._o vide_fw-la pa._n 103._o &_o 3●3_n cyprian_n austin_n jerome_n and_o a_o great_a many_o more_o do_v witness_n that_o sacrifice_n for_o the_o dead_a it_o a_o tradition_n of_o the_o apostle_n jrenaeus_fw-la in_o like_a manner_n who_o live_v anno_o 170._o be_v charge_v by_o the_o centurist_n who_o thus_o write_v of_o he_o de_fw-fr 63._o de_fw-fr cent._n 2._o cap._n 4._o col_fw-fr 63._o oblatione_fw-la irenaus_n l._n 4._o c._n 23._o satis_fw-la videtur_fw-la loqui_fw-la incommodè_fw-la etc._n etc._n jrenaeus_fw-la in_o l._n 4._o c._n 23._o seem_v to_o speak_v inconuenient_o enough_o of_o oblation_n or_o sacrifice_n when_o he_o say_v that_o christ_n have_v teach_v a_o new_a oblation_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n the_o which_o the_o church_n receive_v from_o the_o apostle_n offer_v to_o god_n throughout_o the_o whole_a world_n thus_o far_o the_o centurist_n of_o this_o father_n jgnatius_n the_o apostle_n scholar_n who_o live_v anno_o 90._o be_v thus_o censure_v by_o the_o centurist_n 63._o centurist_n cent._n 2._o c._n 4._o col_fw-fr 63._o quaedam_fw-la ambigna_fw-la &_o incommodè_fw-la dicta_fw-la in_o quibusdam_fw-la occurrunt_fw-la ut_fw-la in_o epistola_fw-la ignatij_fw-la ad_fw-la smirnenses_n non_fw-la licet_fw-la inquit_fw-la jgnatius_n sine_fw-la episcopo_fw-la neque_fw-la offer_n neque_fw-la sacrificium_fw-la immolare_fw-la there_o be_v certain_a doubtful_a and_o inconvenient_a say_n which_o do_v occur_v in_o diverse_a place_n as_o in_o ignatius_n his_o epistle_n ad_fw-la smirnenses_n where_o jgnatius_n say_v it_o be_v not_o lawful_a without_o a_o bishop_n to_o immolate_v or_o offer_v up_o sacrifice_n which_o very_a word_n of_o ignatius_n the_o centurist_n in_o another_o place_n affirm_v to_o be_v 107._o be_v cent._n 2._o c._n 10._o col_fw-fr 107._o periculosa_fw-la &_o quasi_fw-la errorum_fw-la semina_fw-la thus_o far_o of_o the_o father_n doctrine_n touch_v the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n a_o point_v so_o evident_a that_o caluin_n infimulate_v all_o the_o father_n within_o this_o reprehension_n say_v the_o father_n do_v ●●4_n do_v calu._n in_o omnes_fw-la pauli_n ep._n in_o hebr._n ●_o 7._o pag._n ●●4_n adulterate_a the_o supper_n of_o our_o lord_n by_o add_v sacrifice_n unto_o it_o with_o who_o to_o omit_v some_o other_o sebastianus_n francus_n thus_o record_v ecclesiasi_fw-la record_v in_o epist._n de_fw-la abrogandis_fw-la in_o universum_fw-la omnibus_fw-la sta●utis_fw-la ecclesiasi_fw-la statim_fw-la post_fw-la apostolos_fw-la omne_fw-la inversa_fw-la sunt_fw-la etc._n etc._n caena_n domini_fw-la in_o sacrificium_fw-la transformata_fw-la est_fw-la to_o the_o antiquity_n of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o mass_n and_o sacrifice_n i_o will_v subnect_v the_o consideration_n of_o the_o universality_n of_o the_o doctrine_n thereof_o practise_v both_o in_o former_a time_n and_o at_o this_o present_a day_n by_o all_o the_o christian_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n our_o adversary_n only_o except_v for_o the_o christian_n in_o asia_n africa_n europe_n yea_o the_o grecian_n armeniant_fw-la the_o far_o distant_a ethiopian_n and_o the_o remote_a oriental_a jndians_n of_o who_o many_o never_o hear_v of_o the_o roman_a church_n in_o their_o dally_a recourse_n of_o pilgrimage_n to_o jerusalem_n do_v ever_o conspire_v and_o agree_v together_o as_o it_o have_v be_v and_o be_v observe_v by_o traveller_n in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o real_a presence_n and_o daily_o practice_v of_o say_v and_o offer_v up_o the_o holy_a sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n notwithstanding_o their_o know_a diversity_n of_o opinion_n in_o other_o matter_n animadversion_n cxxv_o the_o greek_a text_n in_o luk._n 22._o viz._n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d hic_fw-la calix_fw-la nowm_fw-la testamentum_fw-la in_o sanguine_fw-la meo_fw-la qui_fw-la viz._n calix_n pro_fw-la vobis_fw-la effunditur_fw-la this_o text_n i_o say_v by_o force_n of_o the_o greek_a in_o regard_n that_o the_o relatine_a in_o the_o greek_a agree_v with_o calix_n and_o not_o with_o sanguine_a show_v that_o calix_n be_v shed_v for_o us._n now_o see_v that_o calix_n take_v material_o can_v not_o be_v shed_v for_o we_o therefore_o that_o which_o be_v contain_v in_o the_o calix_n be_v shed_v for_o we_o but_o wine_n can_v not_o be_v shed_v for_o man_n redemption_n therefore_o it_o inavoydable_o follow_v that_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n be_v in_o the_o calix_n this_o testimony_n by_o reason_n of_o the_o greek_a word_n so_o express_v be_v so_o forcible_a and_o convince_a to_o prove_v that_o blood_n be_v in_o the_o cup_n that_o beza_n 22._o beza_n beza_n in_o luc._n 22._o see_v it_o can_v be_v no_o way_n otherwise_o answer_v say_v these_o greek_a word_n be_v surreptitious_a creep_v by_o negligence_n out_o of_o the_o margin_n into_o the_o text_n though_o it_o have_v ever_o be_v read_v as_o now_o we_o read_v it_o in_o all_o ancient_a greek_a manuscript_n animadversion_n cxxvi_o whereas_o our_o adversary_n to_o prove_v that_o the_o verb_n est_fw-fr in_o the_o word_n of_o consegration_n shall_v be_v take_v for_o significat_fw-la so_o exclude_v thereby_o all_o real_a presence_n do_v urge_v many_o text_n of_o scripture_n in_o which_o they_o say_v the_o say_a word_n est_fw-fr must_v of_o necessity_n be_v take_v for_o significat_fw-la as_o agnus_n est_fw-la pascha_fw-la exod_n 12._o septem_fw-la bone_n sunt_fw-la septem_fw-la anni_fw-la genes_n 14._o ego_fw-la sum_fw-la ostium_n joan._n 20._o and_o some_o other_o to_o this_o i_o answer_v first_o that_o in_o parable_n and_o similitude_n the_o verb_n est_fw-fr be_v take_v for_o significat_fw-la and_o yet_o without_o any_o trope_n the_o reason_n hereof_o be_v because_o the_o whole_a essence_n of_o all_o such_o thing_n be_v place_v in_o signification_n second_o i_o answer_v that_o in_o the_o example_n allege_v by_o our_o adversary_n there_o immediate_o follow_v a_o explication_n of_o the_o trope_n and_o figure_n but_o of_o the_o word_n of_o the_o jnstitution_n there_o follow_v no_o explication_n three_o in_o most_o of_o the_o example_n allege_v by_o our_o adversary_n ever_o praedicatur_fw-la disparatum_fw-la de_fw-la disparato_fw-la as_o christus_fw-la est_fw-la ostium_n my_o meaning_n be_v that_o that_o which_o be_v of_o a_o most_o different_a nature_n be_v say_v of_o another_o thing_n of_o the_o like_a different_a nature_n which_o kind_n of_o proposition_n see_v they_o can_v be_v by_o any_o mean_n proper_o &_o literal_o true_a we_o be_v force_v to_o expound_v the_o same_o by_o trope_n and_o figure_n but_o in_o the_o word_n hoc_fw-la est_fw-la corpus_fw-la meum_fw-la there_o be_v no_o such_o kind_n of_o strange_a &_o unusual_a predication_n at_o least_o in_o the_o appearance_n of_o the_o word_n themselves_o animadversion_n cxxvii_o i_o do_v much_o wonder_n that_o any_o of_o our_o learned_a adversary_n as_o often_o they_o do_v insist_v in_o those_o word_n against_o the_o real_a presence_n spiritus_fw-la est_fw-la qui_fw-la vinificat_fw-la caro_fw-la non_fw-la prodest_fw-la joan._n 6._o it_o be_v the_o spirit_n which_o quicken_v the_o flesh_n profit_v not_o for_o here_o the_o literal_a sense_n of_o these_o word_n only_o be_v that_o a_o carnal_a understanding_n of_o spiritual_a thing_n do_v not_o profit_n as_o domini_fw-la as_o serm._n de_fw-fr cau●_n domini_fw-la cyprian_n chrysostome_n place_n chrysostome_n upon_o this_o place_n and_o origen_n no●_n origen_n l._n 3._o in_o epist_n ad_fw-la rome_n no●_n do_v expound_v but_o admit_v that_o christ_n do_v speak_v of_o his_o flesh_n yet_o it_o prove_v nothing_o against_o his_o be_v in_o the_o eucharist_n both_o because_o by_o the_o same_o reason_n we_o may_v conclude_v that_o the_o bread_n be_v not_o in_o the_o sacrament_n for_o if_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n profit_v we_o nothing_o much_o less_o can_v a_o little_a piece_n of_o wheaten_a bread_n profit_n us._n again_o if_o our_o lord_n have_v speak_v of_o his_o flesh_n he_o will_v not_o have_v understand_v it_o absolute_o but_o only_o that_o the_o flesh_n without_o the_o spirit_n profit_v nothing_o since_o otherwise_o our_o lord_n shall_v have_v cross_v himself_o who_o say_v qui_fw-la manducat_fw-la carne●_n meam_fw-la habet_fw-la vitam_fw-la aeternam_fw-la last_o it_o be_v no_o less_o than_o a_o great_a impiety_n to_o deny_v tha●_n the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n be_v unite_v with_o his_o divinity_n profit_v we_o nothing_o see_v s._n paul_n coloss_n 1._o attribute_n all_o our_o saluatio●_n to_o the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n for_o he_o say_v that_o we_o be_v reconcile_v to_o god_n by_o the_o say_a flesh_n animadversion_n cxxviii_o whereas_o our_o adversary_n in_o further_a impugn_v of_o the_o real_a presence_n do_v object_n first_o the_o indignity_n proffer_v by_o we_o to_o christ_n his_o body_n in_o mantayn_v it_o
they_o be_v most_o erroneous_a in_o the_o immediate_a object_n animadversion_n cxlii_o when_o the_o catholic_n do_v allege_v certai●●_n note_n of_o the_o church_n as_o antiquity_n universality_n succession_n conversion_n of_o heath●●_n etc._n etc._n our_o adversary_n seek_v to_o avoid_v th●_n force_v of_o some_o of_o these_o note_n and_o particular_o of_o succession_n and_o conversion_n of_o gentile_n since_o they_o say_v these_o two_o note_n be_v clayman_n by_o confess_o false_a church_n see_v th●_n greek_n church_n hould_v succession_n and_o th●_n arian_n have_v convert_v the_o goth_n an●_n vandal_n to_o answer_v hereto_o i_o first_o say_v these_o two_o instance_n be_v false_a for_o the_o greek_a church_n have_v its_o succession_n as_o interrupt_v and_o begin_v from_o those_o intruder_n who_o bega●_n their_o own_o separation_n from_o the_o roma●_n church_n about_o the_o holy_a ghost_n proceed_v and_o as_o concern_v the_o suppose_a conversion_n of_o the_o goth_n and_o vandal_n by_o the_o arian_n it_o be_v only_o pretend_v see_v the_o goth_n we●●_n not_o at_o the_o first_o convert_v by_o the_o arian_n bu●_n be_v convert_v before_o be_v after_o by_o they_o pervert_v as_o appear_v out_o of_o zozoman_n l._n 6._o c._n 37._o and_o theodoret_n l._n 4._o cap._n ult._n second_o i_o reply_v to_o the_o former_a evasion_n that_o the_o catholic_n rather_o to_o prevent_v the_o imposture_n of_o our_o adversary_n object_v hereto_o they_o out_o of_o any_o absolute_a necessity_n of_o the_o say_a note_n do_v propound_v the_o foresay_a mark_n or_o note_n not_o as_o proper_v alone_o to_o the_o true_a church_n but_o only_o as_o mark_n inseparable_a though_o not_o convertible_a from_o it_o so_o they_o undertake_v thereby_o not_o to_o set_v down_o in_o the_o affirmative_a that_o where_o any_o such_o of_o these_o in_o separable_o mark_n be_v there_o the_o true_a church_n certain_o be_v but_o rather_o in_o the_o negative_a that_o where_o these_o be_v want_v there_o the_o true_a church_n be_v not_o but_o certain_a it_o be_v that_o these_o note_n be_v want_v in_o the_o protestant_a church_n animadversion_n cxliii_o i_o grant_v that_o the_o catholic_a religion_n be_v involue_v with_o far_o more_o difficultye_n as_o may_v be_v exemplify_v in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o real_a presence_n than_o the_o protestant_a religion_n the_o reason_n thereof_o be_v in_o that_o our_o religion_n consist_v of_o affirmative_a article_n the_o protestant_n faith_n so_o far_o forth_o as_o it_o differ_v from_o the_o catholic_a of_o negative_n yet_o to_o recompense_v this_o we_o find_v that_o the_o protestant_a faith_n be_v attend_v on_o contrary_a to_o the_o catholic_a faith_n herein_o with_o diverse_a gross_a absurditye_n necessary_o and_o immediate_o flow_v from_o the_o protestant_n tenet_n or_o assertion_n i_o here_o pass_v over_o how_o baptism_n how_o luth._o l._n the_o cap_a babil_n c._n the_o baptism_n luther_n hould_v that_o infant_n at_o the_o time_n of_o their_o baptise_v have_v a_o articulate_a and_o actual_a faith_n of_o all_o the_o chief_a misterye_n of_o christianity_n that_o our_o adversary_n howsoever_o they_o disclaim_v from_o it_o in_o word_n teach_v 366._o teach_v luther_n in_o assert_v damuat_fw-la per_fw-la leonem_fw-la art_n 36._o beza_n in_o his_o display_v of_o popish_a practice_n pag._n 202._o sumglius_n to_o 1._o de_fw-la prodentia_fw-la fol._n 366._o that_o god_n be_v the_o author_n of_o sin_n these_o and_o many_o other_o such_o like_a absurd_a doctrine_n i_o here_o pass_v over_o only_o i_o will_v a_o little_a insist_v how_o sin_n how_o luther_n in_o assert_v art_n 32._o say_v that_o all_o good_a work_n god_n judge_v they_o be_v mortal_a sin_n luther_n and_o the_o rest_n do_v maintain_v that_o all_o the_o good_a work_n of_o just_a man_n be_v sin_n now_o the_o absurdity_n of_o this_o doctrine_n how_o transparent_a be_v it_o since_o from_o it_o will_v follow_v that_o the_o work_n of_o faith_n by_o which_o we_o be_v iustify_v shall_v be_v sin_n as_o also_o that_o prayer_n wherein_o we_o pray_v dimitte_v nobis_fw-la debita_fw-la nostra_fw-la shall_v be_v a_o sin_n but_o be_v it_o not_o most_o absurd_a that_o man_n shall_v be_v justify_v by_o sin_n and_o that_o he_o shall_v seek_v by_o sin_n to_o obtain_v the_o remission_n of_o sin_n again_o from_o this_o fountain_n we_o may_v thus_o true_o syllogize_v and_o reason_n all_o good_a work_n be_v to_o be_v do_v but_o some_o mortal_a sin_n be_v good_a work_n therefore_o some_o mortal_a sin_n be_v to_o be_v do_v again_o no_o mortal_a sin_n be_v to_o be_v commit_v but_o all_o good_a work_n be_v mortal_a sin_n therefore_o no_o good_a work_n be_v to_o be_v do_v these_o loe_o be_v the_o inference_n of_o the_o former_a absurdity_n to_o wit_n that_o all_o good_a work_n be_v mortal_a sin_n that_o some_o mortal_a sin_n be_v to_o be_v commit_v and_o that_o no_o good_a work_n be_v to_o be_v do_v now_o whereas_o by_o way_n of_o retortion_n our_o adversary_n and_o particular_o kempnitius_n in_o his_o examen_fw-la concilij_fw-la trident_n upbraid_v we_o that_o we_o teach_v a_o more_o blasphemous_a doctrine_n in_o maintain_v that_o we_o be_v iustify_v by_o our_o own_o work_n and_o not_o by_o christ_n his_o passion_n to_o this_o i_o reply_v thar_z in_o object_v of_o this_o appear_v either_o extreme_a malice_n in_o our_o adversary_n or_o at_o least_o most_o wilful_a ignorance_n therefore_o to_o remove_v this_o stumble_a block_n we_o say_v that_o we_o be_v iustify_v by_o a_o inherent_a justice_n or_o renovation_n of_o life_n in_o we_o as_o by_o the_o formal_a cause_n but_o we_o be_v also_o iustify_v by_o the_o merit_n of_o christ_n his_o passion_n as_o by_o the_o meritoriour_a cause_n both_o which_o different_a cause_n may_v stand_v together_o without_o any_o derogation_n of_o the_o one_o to_o the_o other_o contrary_a to_o the_o intend_a fraud_n of_o our_o adversary_n herein_o in_o seek_v to_o confound_v these_o two_o different_a cause_n animadversion_n cxliv_o if_o it_o be_v demand_v how_o luther_n first_o be_v instruct_v of_o the_o devil_n concern_v his_o doctrine_n as_o also_o be_v of_o a_o vicious_a life_n as_o ●n_o this_o treatise_n be_v in_o part_n elsewhere_o show_v ●hould_v for_o his_o doctrine_n be_v so_o much_o applau●ed_v &_o repair_v unto_o by_o the_o break_a member_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n to_o this_o may_v ●e_v answer_v that_o luther_n his_o select_a &_o choice_n prepare_v of_o his_o doctrine_n to_o entertain_v and_o ●t_a the_o then_o several_a affect_a humour_n of_o ●ch_n peculiar_a decline_a estate_n and_o degree_n &_o ●his_fw-la be_v accompany_v with_o the_o visitation_n ●f_a god_n heavy_a judgment_n hang_v over_o ●he_n prevayl_v sin_n of_o those_o degenerate_a ●●mes_n be_v the_o chief_a allective_a for_o the_o more_o easy_a embrace_n of_o luther_n doctrine_n no●_n the_o choycne_n of_o luther_n doctrine_n consist_v to_o insist_v in_o some_o particular_n in_o mantayn_v liberty_n of_o pretend_a marriage_n in_o clergy_n man_n in_o his_o expose_v of_o monastery_n and_o other_o rich_a spoil_n of_o the_o church_n to_o the_o greedy_a appetite_n of_o the_o temporal_a magistrate_n and_o final_o in_o delude_v of_o the_o simple_a &_o sinful_a laity_n with_o his_o other_o licentious_a doctrine_n of_o salvation_n by_o only_a faith_n and_o disclaim_v from_o the_o necessity_n of_o good_a work●_n as_o hold_v they_o needle_n as_o above_o out_o of_o his_o own_o particular_a say_n we_o have_v prove_v in_o the_o several_a embrace_n of_o all_o whic●_n as_o s._n jerome_n vigilantium_fw-la jerome_n jerome_n contra_fw-la vigilantium_fw-la in_o like_a manner_n say_v of_o vigilantius_n his_o follower_n luther_n follower_n favour_v not_o so_o much_o he_o as_o their_o own_o v●●●_n these_o be_v the_o fatal_a step_n of_o luther_n suddarth_n rise_v greatness_n and_o this_o be_v the_o less_o to_o 〈◊〉_d wonder_v at_o see_v we_o see_v that_o the_o like_a c●_n rather_o far_o great_a progress_n be_v make_v 〈◊〉_d this_o kind_n by_o mahomet_n through_o his_o absurd_a and_o licentious_a doctrine_n wherewith_o so_o many_o nation_n be_v even_o at_o this_o day_n infect_v animadversion_n cxlv_o if_o in_o retaliation_n of_o what_o be_v say_v in_o th●●_n last_o above_o animadversion_n our_o adversary_n shall_v labour_v to_o distract_v their_o disciple●_n with_o unequal_a object_v instead_o of_o answer_n the_o suppose_a wicked_a life_n of_o certain_a pope_n i_o reply_v hereto_o that_o admit_v for_o the_o time_n the_o say_v wicked_a life_n of_o the_o pope_n to_o be_v true_a and_o not_o forge_v yet_o the_o disparity_n here_o rest_v in_o that_o those_o pope_n be_v not_o the_o first_o restorer_n of_o our_o religion_n to_o light_n since_o they_o live_v many_o age_n after_o our_o catholic_a religion_n be_v universal_o profess_v as_o appear_v above_o from_o the_o confess_a antiquity_n of_o the_o catholic_a roman_a faith_n again_o i_o say_v the_o question_n here_o be_v not_o whether_o the_o high_a
church_n of_o christ_n thou_o ●0_n thou_o esay_n c._n ●0_n shall_v suck_v the_o milk_n of_o the_o gentill_n and_o the_o breast_n of_o king_n and_o again_o it_o be_v prophesy_v of_o the_o church_n by_o the_o kingly_a prophet_n i_o ●_o i_o psal_n ●_o will_v give_v thou_o the_o heathen_n 〈◊〉_d thy_o inheritance_n and_o the_o end_n of_o the_o earth_n for_o s●●_n thy_o possession_n now_o two_o thing_n be_v clear_a the_o first_o that_o many_o heathen_a kingdom_n h●●e_v be_v convert_v to_o christianity_n by_o the_o pope_n and_o his_o minister_n this_o be_v prove_v from_o the_o confession_n of_o d._n whitaker_n who_o acknowledge_v the_o conversion_n of_o many_o country_n make_v by_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n thus_o debase_v they_o the_o 336._o the_o whitak_n l._n de_fw-fr eccles_n pag._n 336._o conversion_n of_o so_o many_o nation_n after_o the_o time_n of_o gregory_n have_v not_o be_v pure_a but_o corrupt_a now_o that_o the_o protestant_a church_n never_o convert_v any_o gentle_a king_n or_o nation_n to_o the_o faith_n of_o christ_n appear_v from_o its_o confess_a inuisibility_n for_o so_o many_o age_n till_o luther_n time_n above_o set_v down_o thus_o than_o i_o here_o argue_v the_o prediction_n of_o convert_n king_n and_o kingdom_n to_o the_o faith_n of_o christ_n be_v perform_v by_o the_o pope_n only_o and_o his_o substitute_n and_o not_o by_o the_o protestant_n therefore_o the_o prediction_n for_o the_o enlarge_n of_o christ_n his_o church_n by_o convert_n gentill_n unto_o it_o be_v perform_v by_o antichrist_n christ_n design_a enemy_n how_o do_v these_o stand_v together_o and_o yet_o do_v these_o incompatibilitye_n necessary_o result_v out_o of_o the_o former_a assertion_n animadversion_n cliu_o the_o example_n of_o paphnutius_fw-la his_fw-la stand_v in_o the_o nicene_n council_n in_o defence_n of_o priest_n marriage_n so_o much_o insist_v upon_o by_o so_o many_o eminent_a protestant_n be_v misapply_v and_o withal_o in_o all_o likely_a hood_n most_o false_a it_o be_v misapply_v because_o where_o it_o be_v urge_v in_o proof_n of_o priest_n marriage_n it_o prove_v the_o contrary_a for_o though_o perhaps_o paphnutius_fw-la might_n be_v persuade_v that_o priesthood_n do_v not_o dissolve_v marriage_n afore_o contract_v yet_o he_o say_v plain_o those_o 8._o those_o so_o relate_v socrates_n l._n 1._o ca._n 8._o who_o be_v make_v priest_n before_o they_o be_v marry_v can_v after_o marry_v and_o this_o paphnutius_fw-la call_v veterem_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la traditionem_fw-la the_o ancient_a tradition_n of_o the_o church_n so_o far_o be_v paphnutius_fw-la from_o ascribe_v the_o doctrine_n of_o priest_n not_o marry_v after_o the_o order_n of_o priesthood_n take_v to_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a now_o that_o this_o example_n of_o paphnutius_fw-la be_v untrue_a many_o probability_n may_v be_v urge_v first_o because_o there_o be_v not_o so_o much_o as_o any_o mention_n of_o this_o matter_n concern_v paphnutius_fw-la make_v by_o any_o who_o do_v write_v of_o the_o nicene_n council_n before_o socrates_n time_n who_o first_o relate_v the_o word_n of_o paphnutius_fw-la for_o neither_o do_v eusebius_n athanasius_n epiphanius_n theodoret_n nor_o yet_o ruffinus_n himself_o who_o write_v many_o thing_n of_o paphnutius_fw-la and_o of_o the_o nicene_n council_n all_o be_v more_o ancient_a than_o socrates_n make_v any_o mention_n of_o this_o matter_n now_o i_o here_o demand_v can_v all_o these_o be_v silent_a in_o so_o great_a a_o business_n and_o so_o earnest_o debate_v in_o the_o nicene_n council_n second_o this_o example_n of_o paphnutius_fw-la seem_v to_o be_v against_o the_o three_o canon_n of_o the_o say_v nycene_n council_n which_o altogether_o forbid_v priest_n to_o have_v dwell_v with_o they_o any_o woman_n other_o than_o their_o mother_n sister_n their_o father_n sister_n their_o mother_n sister_n etc._n etc._n now_o if_o as_o socrates_n report_v in_o the_o example_n of_o paphnutius_fw-la the_o council_n have_v leave_v liberty_n for_o marry_a layman_n afterward_o make_v priest_n to_o have_v keep_v still_o their_o former_a wynes_n why_o then_o be_v not_o the_o wise_n first_o place_v here_o in_o the_o exception_n but_o altogether_o omit_v this_o example_n of_o paphnutius_fw-la be_v so_o much_o suspect_v to_o be_v false_a that_o frigevilleus_n 103._o frigevilleus_n in_o his_o palm●_n christiana_n p._n 103._o ganuius_n a_o protestant_n do_v plain_o ascribe_v it_o to_o the_o forgery_n of_o socrates_n animadversion_n clv_o it_o will_v not_o be_v amiss_o to_o observe_v the_o protestant_n method_n in_o dispute_v with_o the_o catholic_n touch_v the_o real_a presence_n as_o it_o be_v teach_v by_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n for_o the_o question_n of_o the_o real_a presence_n be_v but_o propound_v they_o quick_o tell_v we_o that_o christ_n never_o intend_v or_o will_v it_o which_o answer_n be_v make_v to_o omit_v all_o other_o protestant_n by_o 971._o by_o in_o his_o decade_n in_o english_a serm_n 8._o p._n 971._o bullinger_n and_o when_o to_o declare_v christ_n will_n therein_o we_o allege_v his_o word_n they_o make_v then_o a_o new_a question_n of_o his_o power_n as_o deny_v such_o to_o be_v his_o will_n or_o sense_n of_o word_n under_o pretence_n that_o it_o be_v 179._o be_v so_o answer_v whitak_v in_o his_o answ_n to_o m._n william_n reynolds_n pa_n 179._o contradictory_n to_o the_o truth_n and_o nature_n of_o his_o humane_a body_n now_o in_o heaven_n and_o so_o be_v thereby_o impossible_a and_o when_o in_o reply_n thereto_o we_o prove_v to_o they_o direct_o that_o it_o be_v not_o impossible_a then_o return_v per_fw-la circuitum_fw-la to_o their_o firster_n evasion_n they_o answer_v that_o the_o question_n 192._o question_n so_o answer_v d._n whitak_n in_o his_o answer_n to_o m._n reynolds_n refutation_n pag._n 192._o be_v not_o of_o his_o power_n but_o only_o of_o his_o will_n and_o so_o dance_v in_o a_o round_a they_o trifle_v and_o delude_v we_o by_o a_o subtle_a escape_n of_o a_o endless_a circulation_n animadversion_n clvi_o it_o be_v most_o certain_a that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o many_o of_o our_o adversary_n touch_v the_o real_a presence_n be_v involue_v with_o great_a show_n of_o impossibility_n than_o our_o catholic_a doctrine_n thereof_o be_v for_o whereas_o they_o teach_v that_o christ_n real_a body_n be_v real_o 15._o real_o so_o teach_v beside_o many_o other_o m._n perkins_n in_o his_o reform_a catholic_a pag._n 187._o and_o d._n fulke_o against_o the_o rh●mish_n testam_fw-la in_o 1._o cor._n 15._o and_o true_o present_a and_o yet_o not_o bodily_a and_o corporal_o but_o only_o spiritual_o present_a by_o which_o word_n spiritual_o they_o do_v not_o exclude_v the_o true_a and_o real_a presence_n of_o his_o body_n now_o how_o this_o shall_v be_v free_a from_o repugnancy_n and_o mere_a contradiction_n and_o therefore_o impossible_a i_o can_v discern_v for_o to_o affirm_v that_o christ_n very_a body_n and_o not_o only_o a_o figure_n or_o efficacy_n thereof_o shall_v be_v true_o and_o real_o present_a and_o yet_o not_o bodily_a but_o spiritual_o present_a be_v in_o itself_o inexplicable_a and_o as_o swinglius_n ●06_n swinglius_n swimglius_n co_fw-la 2._o de_fw-la vera_fw-la &_o falsa_fw-la religion_n fol._n ●06_n in_o confutation_n thereof_o true_o observe_v be_v upon_o the_o matter_n no_o other_o thing_n then_o to_o turn_v his_o body_n into_o a_o spirit_n for_o as_o the_o true_a substance_n of_o christ_n spirit_n can_v be_v say_v to_o be_v present_a to_o we_o only_o corporal_o or_o bodily_a and_o not_o spiritual_o because_o it_o be_v a_o spirit_n and_o no_o body_n so_o neither_o may_v the_o substance_n itself_o of_o christ_n very_a body_n be_v say_v to_o be_v present_a to_o we_o not_o bodily_a but_o only_o spiritual_o nor_o at_o all_o spiritual_o unless_o we_o do_v which_o be_v impertinent_a to_o the_o matter_n in_o hand_n understand_v the_o word_n spiritual_a as_o the_o apostle_n do_v 1._o cor._n 15._o because_o it_o be_v a_o true_a and_o real_a body_n &_o no_o spirit_n animadversion_n clvii_o universality_n of_o our_o catholic_a doctrine_n in_o all_o chief_a point_n disperse_a througout_n all_o nation_n even_o by_o the_o acknowledgement_n of_o our_o adversary_n as_o appear_v from_o their_o confess_a inuisibility_n of_o their_o own_o church_n and_o religion_n for_o so_o many_o age_n be_v a_o most_o strong_a argument_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o our_o catholic_a religion_n my_o reason_n hereof_o be_v in_o that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n can_v not_o by_o any_o pretend_a corruption_n be_v derive_v from_o that_o church_n to_o so_o many_o nation_n so_o far_o remote_a and_o distant_a each_o from_o other_o sundry_a of_o which_o nation_n be_v unknown_a to_o the_o latin_a church_n and_o many_o of_o they_o at_o variance_n therewith_o in_o some_o small_a point_n therefore_o from_o hence_o i_o conclude_v that_o our_o catholic_a faith_n be_v the_o primitive_a faith_n first_o teach_v by_o the_o apostle_n in_o all_o those_o far_o different_a nation_n wherein_o
virginity_n yet_o it_o follow_v not_o &c._n &c._n 10._o that_o the_o scripture_n be_v to_o be_v discern_v so_o far_o as_o concern_v our_o take_a notice_n of_o they_o by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n austin_n most_o full_o teach_v and_o be_v therefore_o condemn_v by_o swinglius_n in_o these_o word_n here_o 135._o here_o swingl_n tom_fw-mi 1._o fol._n 135._o i_o entreat_v your_o indifferent_a judgement_n that_o you_o free_o speak_v whether_o this_o say_n of_o austin_n mean_v about_o the_o discern_a of_o scripture_n by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n be_v think_v more_o audacious_a then_o fit_v or_o to_o have_v be_v utter_v imprudent_o 11._o touch_v the_o book_n of_o toby_n judith_n hester_n maccabee_n s._n austin_n do_v admit_v they_o all_o for_o true_a divine_a and_o canonical_a scripture_n and_o for_o such_o his_o do_v be_v reprehend_v by_o hospinian_n 700._o hospinian_n hospinian_n hist_o sacr._n part_n 1._o p._n 160._o zanchius_n de_fw-fr sacra_fw-la scriptura_fw-la pag_n 32._o &_o 33._o d._n fyeld_v of_o the_o church_n l._n 4._o c._n 23._o p._n 246._o d._n reynolds_n in_o his_o conclusion_n annex_v to_o his_o conference_n conclus_fw-la 2_o p._n 699._o &_o 700._o zanchius_n d._n fyeld_v and_o doctor_n reynolds_n 12._o s._n austin_n be_v so_o full_a for_o the_o doctrine_n of_o tradition_n that_o they_o be_v to_o be_v receive_v as_o that_o m._n cartwright_n speak_v of_o one_o tradition_n which_o austin_n defend_v thus_o burst_v out_o to_o allow_v ●6●_n allow_v cartwright_n in_o m._n whitguiftt_n defence_n p._n ●6●_n s._n augustine_n saying_n be_v to_o bring_v in_o popery_n again_o and_o further_o he_o thus_o speak_v of_o s._n austin_n herein_o if_o 86._o if_o in_o cartwright_n his_o second_o reply_n part_n 1._o pag._n 84._o 85._o 86._o s._n augustine_n judgement_n be_v a_o good_a judgement_n than_o there_o be_v some_o thing_n command_v of_o god_n which_o be_v not_o in_o the_o scripture_n and_o thereupon_o no_o sufficient_a doctrine_n contain_v in_o the_o scripture_n 13._o touch_v the_o sacrament_n confer_v grace_n to_o the_o worthy_a receiver_n s._n austin_n for_o teach_v our_o catholic_a doctrine_n therein_o be_v reprehend_v by_o ult._n by_o luth._o l._n contra_fw-la coelaeum_n and_o caluin_n lib._n instit_fw-la 4._o c._n 14_o sect_n ult._n luther_n and_o caluin_n 14._o that_o child_n can_v not_o be_v save_v without_o be_v baptize_v cartwright_n thus_o speak_v of_o s_n austin_n herein_o austin_n 5●1_n austin_n cartwright_n in_o whitguift_n defence_n pag._n 5●1_n be_v of_o mind_n that_o child_n can_v not_o be_v save_v without_o baptism_n and_o hereupon_o then_o cartwright_n charge_v s._n austin_n with_o absurdity_n 516._o absurdity_n vbi_fw-la supra_fw-la p_o 516._o now_o in_o regard_n of_o this_o absolute_a necessity_n of_o baptism_n to_o child_n b_o z●_n 143._o z●_n beza_n in_o respon_n ad_fw-la act._n colloq_fw-la montisbelg_n par_fw-fr 2._o p._n 143._o confess_v that_o austin_n teach_v that_o in_o case_n of_o necessity_n it_o be_v lawful_a for_o the_o laity_n to_o baptise_v 15._o touch_v the_o real_a presence_n teach_v by_o s._n austin_n hospinian_n 293._o hospinian_n hist_o sacramen_fw-la par_fw-fr 1._o l._n 4._o pa._n 292._o &_o 293._o the_o protestant_n charge_v and_o reprehend_v s._n austin_n therefore_o and_o particular_o for_o these_o word_n of_o s._n austin_n when_o 33._o when_o austin_n tom_fw-mi 8._o in_o psal_n 33._o christ_n say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n then_o that_o his_o body_n be_v carry_v in_o his_o hand_n 16._o that_o austin_n teach_v that_o the_o wicked_a contrary_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o protestant_n do_v receive_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v confess_v and_o reprehend_v by_o bucer_n in_o these_o word_n how_o 619._o how_o script_n anglic_n pag._n 619._o often_o do_v austin_n write_v tha●_n even_o judas_n receive_v the_o very_a body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n now_o further_o that_o austin_n teach_v that_o the_o sacrament_n ought_v to_o be_v take_v f●sting_a be_v confess_v by_o hospinian_n in_o hist_n sacram_fw-la part_n 1._o pag._n 48_o in_o like_a manner_n that_o austin_n teach_v that_o holy_a bread_n be_v to_o be_v give_v to_o the_o catechumeni_fw-la d._n fulke_o confess_v thus_o answer_v thereto_o term_v i●_n a_o superstitio●●_n bread_n give_v in_o s._n augustine_n time_n to_o those_o tes●_n be_v catechumeni_fw-la instead_o of_o the_o sacrament_n fulke_o against_o heskin_n etc._n etc._n l._n 3_o c._n 23._o pag._n 377._o to_o pass_v further_o that_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n in_o respect_n of_o his_o be_v in_o the_o sacrament_n be_v to_o be_v adore_v in_o the_o sacrament_n d._n bilson_n reprehend_v s._n austin_n for_o such_o his_o doctrine_n bils●●_n in_o his_o true_a difference_n par_fw-fr 4._o pag._n 536._o to_o conclude_v touch_v the_o b._n sacrament_n of_o the_o eucharist_n whereas_o s._n austin_n teach_v in_o tom_n 3._o in_o enchirid._n cap._n 110._o saying_n the_o sacrifice_n of_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n be_v propitious_a or_o available_a for_o the_o soul_n in_o purgatory_n this_o sentence_n be_v confess_v by_o hutterus_n the_o protestant_n and_o in_o lieu_n of_o full_a answer_n thereto_o he_o say_v in_o aeternum_fw-la defendi_fw-la non_fw-la potest_fw-la this_o say_n of_o austin_n can_v never_o be_v defend_v hutterus_n l._n de_fw-la sacrificio_fw-la missatico_n l_o 2._o c._n 7._o p._n 525._o 17._o s._n austin_n be_v so_o earnest_a in_o defence_n of_o freewill_n and_o universal_a grace_n that_o he_o be_v therefore_o acknowledge_v and_o dislyke_v by_o the_o century_n 501._o century_n cent._n 5._o c._n 4._o col_fw-fr 900._o &_o 501._o writer_n the_o centurist_n 12._o centurist_n centur_fw-la 5._o ca._n 10._o col_fw-fr 113●_n and_o whitak_v ad_fw-la rat._n camp_n rat_n 1._o pa._n 12._o &_o d._n whitaker_n do_v acknowledge_v that_o justification_n by_o work_n be_v in_o like_a manner_n teach_v by_o s._n austin_n 18._o touch_v the_o doctrine_n of_o merit_n of_o work_n thus_o write_v osiander_n of_o s._n austin_n austin_n sometime_o in_o the_o article_n of_o justification_n seem_v to_o attribute_v overmuch_o to_o the_o merit_n of_o work_n etc._n etc._n cent._n 4._o l._n 4._o cap._n 23._o 19_o touch_v prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a thus_o d._n fulke_o avouch_v austin_n 349._o austin_n d._n fulk_n in_o confut_o of_o purg._n pa._n 349._o defend_v prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a and_o that_o s._n austin_n do_v hold_v purgatory_n be_v in_o like_a manner_n confess_v by_o 78._o by_o fulk_n ib._n pa._n 78._o d._n fulke_o 20._o touch_v invocation_n of_o saint_n s._n austin_n be_v so_o full_o catholic_a that_o himself_o doubt_v not_o to_o pray_v to_o s._n cyprian_n be_v long_o before_o martyr_v which_o action_n kempnitius_n thus_o reprehend_v 211._o reprehend_v exa_fw-la par_fw-fr 3._o pa._n 211._o austin_n do_v this_o without_o scripture_n yield_v to_o the_o time_n and_o custom_n 21._o in_o proof_n that_o image_n may_v be_v worship_v hospinian_n 8._o hospinian_n sacram_fw-la part_n ●_o l._n 5._o c._n 8._o though_o a_o protestant_n yet_o agree_v with_o s._n austin_n herein_o allege_v he_o in_o proof_n hereof_o 22._o touch_v the_o fast_a of_o lent_n and_o other_o fast_n s._n austin_n be_v reprehend_v by_o the_o centurist_n cent._n 5._o c._n 6._o col_fw-fr 686._o 687._o 23._o touch_v vow_v of_o monastical_a life_n the_o centurist_n 710_o centurist_n cent._n 5._o col_fw-fr 710_o charge_v s._n austin_n with_o the_o doctrine_n thereof_o and_o hospinian_n thus_o write_v of_o austin_n herein_o austin_n 33._o austin_n hosp_n de_fw-fr origine_fw-la monach._n fol._n 33._o be_v a_o great_a lover_n of_o monastical_a profession_n according_a to_o the_o custom_n of_o that_o age_n to_o conclude_v this_o long_a animadversion_n austin_n teach_v that_o antichrist_n shall_v be_v but_o one_o only_a man_n and_o that_o therefore_o the_o pope_n be_v many_o can_v be_v true_o account_v antichrist_n this_o be_v confess_v and_o dislyke_v by_o the_o 435_o the_o cent._n 1._o l._n ●_o col_fw-fr 435_o centurist_n thus_o far_o now_o of_o this_o passage_n from_o whence_o we_o may_v conclude_v that_o that_o father_n to_o who_o so_o many_o learned_a protestant_n do_v above_o give_v so_o high_a commendation_n and_o praise_n be_v in_o all_o point_n of_o our_o catholic_a roman_n religion_n even_o by_o the_o acknowledgement_n of_o the_o protestant_n a_o entire_a roman_a catholic_a or_o papist_n and_o hereupon_o i_o refer_v to_o the_o judgement_n of_o any_o man_n careful_a of_o his_o salvation_n whether_o it_o be_v not_o more_o secure_a for_o one_o to_o range_v himself_o in_o faith_n &_o religion_n with_o so_o worthy_a a_o member_n of_o christ_n church_n as_o austin_n be_v even_o in_o the_o confession_n of_o our_o adversary_n who_o notwithstanding_o their_o diversity_n of_o religion_n from_o he_o even_o in_o relate_v of_o his_o catholic_a doctryne_n for_o the_o most_o part_n do_v give_v he_o the_o title_n of_o saint_n then_o to_o dissent_v from_o he_o in_o faith_n and_o to_o join_v himself_o in_o religion_n
●e_a book_n but_o they_o do_v write_v either_o a_o ●●tory_n as_o the_o evangelist_n do_v or_o epistles●on_o ●on_z some_o special_a occasion_n as_o peter_n paul_n ●●es_n judas_n john_n and_o in_o the_o same_o do_v dis●te_a or_o discourse_n of_o dogmatic_a point_n of_o ●yth_v only_o obiter_fw-la and_o as_o circumstance_n indeed_o they_o animadversion_n clxxi_o ●he_n first_o proposition_n touch_v indulgence_n the_o foundation_n and_o groundwork_n of_o ●he_n doctrine_n of_o indulgence_n be_v that_o there_o re●ayneth_v in_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n a_o certain_a spiritual_a treasury_n of_o the_o satisfaction_n of_o ●hrist_n and_o his_o saint_n which_o may_v be_v apply_v ●o_o those_o who_o stand_v subject_a to_o temporal_a punishment_n after_o the_o guilt_n of_o eternal_a punishment_n be_v remit_v in_o the_o sacrament_n of_o penance_n for_o the_o better_a explicate_v of_o which_o doctrine_n these_o follow_a proposition_n be_v to_o be_v deliver_v the_o first_o proposition_n in_o one_o and_o the_o sam●_n good_a action_n or_o work_n of_o a_o just_a man_n a_o double_a price_n or_o value_n be_v assign_v to_o it_o the_o one_o of_o merit_n the_o other_o of_o satisfaction_n for_o example_n the_o one_o and_o same_o act_n of_o give_v of_o alm_n be_v satisfactory_a in_o that_o it_o be_v a_o laborious_a or_o penal●_n work_v it_o be_v also_o meritorious_a because_o it_o be_v a_o good_a work_n proceed_v from_o charity_n now_o the_o give_v of_o alm_n proceed_v from_o charity_n be_v not_o less_o good_a because_o it_o be_v laborious_a and_o penal_a upon_o the_o same_o reason_n the●_n it_o follow_v that_o the_o same_o prayer_n may_v be_v both_o impetratory_n and_o meritorious_a the_o second_o proposition_n a_o good_a work_n in_o that_o respect_n as_o it_o be_v meritorious_a can_v be_v apply_v to_o another_o but_o it_o may_v be_v apply_v as_o it_o i●_n satisfactory_a the_o first_o part_n of_o this_o proposition_n be_v prove_v because_o it_o can_v come_v to_o pass_v that_o in_o respect_n that_o one_o do_v work_v well_o another_z shall_v be_v say_v to_o work_v well_o in_o the_o say_a action_n the_o second_o part_n be_v prove_v because_o satisfaction_n be_v a_o compensation_n of_o the_o punishment_n or_o pay_v of_o what_o i●_n due_a but_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o one_o man_n may_v make_v compensation_n of_o punishment_n for_o another_o man_n or_o pay_v the_o debt_n of_o another_o man_n the_o three_o proposition_n there_o remain_v in_o the_o church_n a_o infinite_a treasury_n of_o christ_n satisfaction_n which_o can_v never_o be_v exhaust_v or_o dry_v up_o this_o be_v evident_a since_o the_o passion_n of_o christ_n 〈◊〉_d of_o a_o infinite_a worth_n price_n and_o dignity_n ●or_a it_o be_v the_o passion_n of_o a_o infinite_a person_n 〈◊〉_d wit_n of_o the_o word_n incarnate_v for_o he_o be_v 〈◊〉_d who_o shed_v his_o blood_n for_o the_o church_n ●ut_fw-la do_v she_o will_v it_o in_o man_n flesh_n hypostatical_a assumpt_v now_o the_o dignity_n of_o satisfa●ion_n receave_v its_o measure_n from_o the_o dignity_n 〈◊〉_d the_o person_n satisfy_v even_o as_o the_o greatness_n of_o the_o offence_n take_v its_o proportion_n ●om_n the_o dignity_n of_o the_o person_n offend_v ●herefore_o from_o hence_o it_o be_v infer_v that_o ●●ere_o be_v yet_o remain_v a_o great_a part_n of_o the_o ●orth_n and_o price_n of_o the_o passion_n of_o christ_n ●●ich_a may_v always_o be_v apply_v to_o man._n the_o four_o proposition_n to_o this_o supera●●dant_a treasury_n of_o the_o satisfaction_n of_o christ_n ●●ng_v the_o passion_n or_o suffering_n of_o the_o b._n virgin_n ●as_v a_o such_o other_o saint_n who_o have_v suffer_v more_o 〈◊〉_d this_o world_n than_o their_o sin_n have_v deserve_v for_o 〈◊〉_d be_v evident_a not_o to_o speak_v of_o other_o saint_n ●●t_v the_o bless_a virgin_n never_o commit_v any_o ●●tuall_a sin_n &_o yet_o it_o be_v say_v that_o the_o sword_n 〈◊〉_d grief_n pierce_v her_o soul_n luc._n 2._o in_o like_a sort_n 〈◊〉_d john_n baptist_n be_v sanctify_v in_o his_o mo●ers_n womb_n do_v lead_v a_o most_o innocent_a life_n use_v stand_v obnoxious_a to_o most_o few_o and_o most_o ●ght_a or_o small_a sin_n and_o yet_o in_o defence_n of_o ●●e_z truth_n he_o be_v behead_v therefore_o it_o ●●nnot_v be_v doubt_v but_o that_o a_o great_a heap_n ●f_a passion_n and_o suffering_n of_o the_o b._n virgin_n &_o 〈◊〉_d s._n john_n baptist_n be_v upon_o their_o death_n re●ayning_v of_o which_o themselves_o do_v not_o stand_v in_o need_n for_o the_o satisfy_n for_o any_o temporal_a punishment_n all_o which_o superabundan●●_n of_o satisfaction_n be_v lay_v up_o in_o the_o treason_n house_n of_o the_o church_n thus_o far_o of_o th●_n point_n only_o i_o add_v that_o so_o the_o person_n m●●_n be_v capable_a of_o jndulgence_n two_o thing_n be_v require_v the_o first_o that_o he_o be_v in_o state_n of_o grace_n the_o second_o that_o he_o perform_v all_o that_o whic●_n be_v enjoin_v to_o he_o for_o the_o obtain_n of_o the_o jndulgence_n animadversion_n clxxii_o when_o it_o be_v say_v indulgence_n do_v profit_v the_o soul_n of_o the_o depart_a only_o per_fw-la modu●_n suffragij_fw-la the_o meaning_n hereof_o be_v because_o jndulgence_n do_v not_o profit_v the_o depart_v by_o way_n of_o juridical_a absolution_n but_o by_o way_n of_o solution_n or_o payment_n that_o be_v by_o way_n of_o satisfaction_n thus_o when_o a_o man_n give_v alm_n or_o fa_v or_o go_v on_o pilgrimage_n to_o holy_a place_n for_o the_o relief_n of_o a_o soul_n depart_v he_o do_v not_o absolve_v that_o soul_n from_o the_o guilt_n of_o punishment_n but_o he_o only_o offer_v up_o that_o satisfaction_n that_o god_n accept_v thereof_o will_v free_v and_o deliver_v it_o from_o the_o due_a punishment_n which_o otherwise_o it_o be_v to_o suffer_v even_o so_o the_o pope_n do_v not_o absolve_v the_o depart_a soul_n but_o out_o of_o the_o treasury_n of_o satisfaction_n remain_v in_o the_o church_n offer_v up_o so_o much_o to_o god_n as_o be_v needful_a to_o free_v and_o deliver_v the_o soul_n for_o the_o close_a of_o these_o animadversion_n touch_v the_o doctrine_n of_o indulgence_n the_o reader_n be_v to_o take_v particular_a notice_n and_o the_o rather_o through_o the_o wlilfull_a &_o malicious_a mistake_n of_o our_o adversary_n ●ho_fw-mi do_v mighty_o calumniate_v we_o in_o this_o question_n of_o jndulgence_n that_o we_o teach_v the_o guilt_n of_o eternal_a damnation_n be_v remit_v only_o by_o the_o sacrament_n of_o confession_n or_o by_o most_o perfect_a contrition_n in_o lieu_n thereof_o when_o there_o be_v not_o opportunity_n of_o the_o other_o the_o subject_n of_o a_o indulgence_n be_v only_o a_o temporal_a punishment_n due_a to_o be_v suffer_v after_o the_o guilt_n of_o damnation_n be_v remit_v which_o temporal_a punishment_n by_o mean_n of_o indulgence_n we_o hold_v may_v be_v either_o lessen_v or_o whole_o take_v away_o in_o a_o man_n who_o be_v in_o state_n of_o grace_n but_o not_o if_o he_o be_v in_o state_n of_o mortal_a sinne._n animadversion_n clxxiii_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o the_o english_a translation_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n make_v by_o the_o protestant_n be_v most_o corrupt_a and_o in_o diverse_a place_n most_o different_a from_o the_o greek_a in_o which_o tongue_n either_o all_o or_o most_o of_o the_o new_a testament_n be_v first_o write_v i_o will_v exemplify_v in_o two_o passage_n the_o new_a testament_n make_v mention_n of_o good_a or_o pious_a tradition_n &_o of_o wicked_a and_o jewish_a tradition_n express_v they_o both_o by_o one_o &_o the_o same_o greek_a word_n to_o wit_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d which_o proper_o signifi_v traditio_fw-la now_o the_o imposture_n here_o rest_v for_o our_o english_a protestant_n translation_n in_o such_o text_n wherein_o be_v understand_v good_a and_o profitable_a tradition_n as_o in_o 1._o cor._n 2._o and_o 2._o thess_n 2._o do_v translate_v instead_o of_o the_o word_n tradition_n the_o word_n ordinance_n but_o where_o the_o text_n speak_v of_o wicked_a and_o frivolous_a tradition_n there_o our_o adversary_n put_v down_o most_o punctual_o as_o it_o math._n 15._o in_o their_o translation_n the_o right_a word_n tradition_n now_o this_o calumny_n be_v use_v in_o dislike_n of_o apostolical_a tradition_n that_o so_o the_o ignorant_a reader_n shall_v never_o find_v the_o word_n tradition_n in_o scripture_n in_o a_o good_a sense_n but_o always_o in_o a_o bad_a and_o disalow_v though_o now_o in_o their_o last_o translation_n but_o not_o in_o any_o former_a for_o the_o better_a salve_v of_o their_o credit_n they_o put_v only_o in_o the_o margin_n of_o such_o text_n speak_v of_o godly_a tradition_n the_o word_n tradition_n the_o like_a course_n they_o hold_v in_o translate_n the_o greek_a word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d signify_v dignus_fw-la in_o english_a worthy_a and_o the_o verb_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d to_o be_v make_v worthy_a for_o in_o those_o text_n which_o
which_o we_o catholic_n call_v the_o sacrament_n of_o extreme_a unction_n but_o to_o proceed_v further_o in_o this_o point_n touch_v the_o book_n of_o common_a prayer_n in_o those_o day_n i_o will_v allege_v the_o word_n of_o m._n done_n a_o eminent_a protestant_n who_o thus_o write_v hereof_o concern_v 31._o concern_v m._n dove_n in_o hit_n persuasion_n to_o english_a recusant_n pag._n 31._o the_o book_n of_o common_a prayer_n when_o the_o mass_n be_v first_o put_v down_o k._n henry_n have_v his_o english_a liturgy_n and_o that_o be_v judge_v absolute_a and_o without_o exception_n but_o when_o king_n edward_n come_v to_o the_o crown_n that_o be_v condemn_v and_o another_o in_o the_o place_n be_v make_v which_o peter_n martyr_n and_o bucer_n do_v approve_v as_o very_o consonant_a to_o god_n word_n when_o queen_n elizabeth_n begin_v to_o reign_v the_o former_a be_v judge_v to_o be_v full_a of_o imperfection_n and_o a_o new_a devise_v and_o allow_v by_o consent_n of_o the_o clergy_n but_o about_o the_o middle_n of_o her_o reign_n we_o grow_v weary_a of_o that_o book_n and_o great_a mean_n have_v be_v make_v to_o abandon_v that_o and_z establish_z another_z which_o though_o it_o be_v not_o obtain_v yet_o do_v we_o at_o the_o least_o at_o every_o change_n of_o prince_n change_v our_o book_n of_o common_a prayer_n we_o be_v so_o wanton_a that_o we_o know_v not_o what_o we_o will_v have_v thus_o this_o protestant_n now_o from_o hence_o i_o conclude_v first_o that_o protestancy_n here_o in_o england_n be_v not_o so_o ancient_a as_o from_o king_n edward_n day_n second_o that_o it_o be_v not_o at_o perfection_n in_o the_o middle_n of_o queen_n elizabeth_n reign_n for_o if_o it_o have_v then_o be_v perfect_a and_o complete_a there_o have_v be_v no_o need_n of_o a_o new_a common_a prayer-book_n for_o at_o every_o change_n of_o the_o common_a book_n of_o prayer_n there_o be_v a_o change_n of_o point_n of_o faith_n according_a to_o which_o point_v the_o former_a communion_n book_n be_v to_o be_v reform_v &_o correct_v and_o therefore_o according_a to_o the_o judgement_n of_o man_n of_o those_o time_n it_o be_v thus_o say_v by_o m._n parker_n the_o daystar_n 4._o daystar_n m._n parker_n against_o symbolise_v part_n 2._o cap._n 5._o pag._n 4._o be_v not_o rise_v so_o high_a in_o their_o day_n when_o yet_o queen_n elizabeth_n reform_v the_o defect_n of_o king_n edward_n communion_n book_n etc._n etc._n yet_o so_o alter_v 37._o alter_v ibidem_fw-la pag._n 37._o as_o that_o when_o it_o be_v propose_v to_o be_v confirm_v by_o the_o parliament_n it_o be_v refuse_v animadversion_n clxxviii_o the_o doctrine_n of_o recusancy_n be_v teach_v both_o by_o protestant_n and_o catholic_n since_o both_o of_o they_o hold_v it_o a_o most_o wicked_a thing_n and_o not_o to_o be_v do_v but_o under_o pain_n of_o damnation_n without_o final_a repentance_n that_o a_o man_n shall_v communicate_v only_o in_o go_v to_o the_o church_n and_o to_o hear_v but_o a_o sermon_n contrary_a to_o that_o religion_n which_o himself_o believe_v to_o be_v true_a for_o though_o this_o act_n may_v seem_v to_o be_v cover_v under_o pretence_n of_o observe_v the_o prince_n commandment_n &_o for_o fear_n of_o lose_v our_o temporal_a estate_n yet_o in_o very_a deed_n this_o act_n of_o go_v to_o the_o church_n virtual_o and_o potential_o include_v a_o conformity_n in_o all_o point_n to_o the_o religion_n of_o that_o church_n to_o the_o which_o a_o man_n go_v and_o so_o ●t_a come_v to_o be_v a_o dissimulation_n or_o rather_o a_o absolute_a abnegation_n of_o that_o religion_n which_o a_o man_n hold_v in_o his_o soul_n to_o be_v the_o only_a true_a religion_n now_o that_o the_o protestant_n do_v teach_v the_o doctrine_n of_o recusancy_n i_o mean_v not_o to_o be_v present_a at_o the_o sermon_n or_o prayer_n of_o a_o different_a religion_n i_o prove_v from_o 584._o from_o caluin_n de_fw-fr vitandis_fw-la superstitionibus_fw-la extat_fw-la in_o tract_n theolog._n pag._n 584._o caluin_n from_o the_o divines_n 87._o divines_n the_o divines_n of_o germany_n allege_v in_o this_o point_n by_o sleydan_n in_o comment_n english_v l._n 7_o fol._n 87._o of_o germany_n from_o melancthon_n 618._o melancthon_n melancth_v in_o conc●_n theolog._n pa._n 618._o from_o peter_n 394._o peter_n peter_n martyr_n in_o his_o discourse_n hereof_o recite_v in_o melancth_v treatise_n de_fw-fr council_n theolog._n p._n 394._o martyr_n and_o to_o omit_v other_o from_o d._n etc._n d._n w●●e●_n in_o synops._n print_v 1600._o pag._n 612._o 613._o etc._n etc._n willet_n that_o the_o catholic_n do_v with_o the_o like_a or_o great_a fervour_n preach_v and_o practise_v th●_n same_o doctrine_n of_o recusancy_n be_v clear_a by_o the_o example_n in_o our_o own_o country_n where_o sin_n protestancy_n be_v first_o plant_v some_o score_n beside_o of_o the_o laity_n of_o venerable_a &_o learned_a priest_n have_v choose_v rather_o to_o suff●●_n death_n in_o queen_n elizabeth_n her_o reign_n than_o once_o to_o go_v to_o the_o protestant_a church_n their_o life_n be_v common_o proffer_v they_o if_o they_o will_v conform_v themselves_o and_o leave_v their_o recusancy_n but_o they_o loathe_v such_o condition_n for_o the_o more_o full_a proof_n of_o this_o verity_n i_o add_v the_o testimony_n of_o three_o most_o eminent_a &_o most_o remarkable_a man_n who_o judgment_n some_o year_n past_o be_v demand_v whether_o the_o catholic_n of_o england_n may_v for_o save_v their_o good_n &_o living_n go_v to_o the_o protestant_a church_n to_o hear_v a_o sermon_n do_v joint_o condemn_v the_o same_o as_o most_o unlawful_a and_o impious_a the_o man_n be_v these_o cardinal_n bellarmine_n cardinal_n baronius_n and_o muti●●vitellescus_n now_o general_a of_o the_o order_n of_o the_o society_n of_o jesus_n i_o will_v here_o set_v down_o their_o own_o word_n the_o judgement_n of_o cardinal_n bellarmine_n consideratis_fw-la rationibus_fw-la pro_fw-la utraqueparte_v allatis_fw-la existimo_fw-la non_fw-la licere_fw-la viris_fw-la catholicis_fw-la in_o anglia_fw-it haereticorum_fw-la adire_fw-la ecclesias_fw-la multó_n minùs_fw-la concionibus_fw-la ipsorum_fw-la interest_n minimè_fw-la autem_fw-la omnium_fw-la cum_fw-la ipsis_fw-la in_o precibus_fw-la vel_fw-la psalmodia_fw-la alijsque_fw-la ipsorum_fw-la ecclesiasticis_fw-la ritibus_fw-la convenire_fw-la ideo_fw-la propria_fw-la manu_fw-la subscripsi_fw-la robertus_fw-la bellarminus_n sanctae_fw-la r._n ecclesiae_fw-la presbyter_n cardinalis_fw-la tituli_fw-la sanctae_fw-la mariae_fw-la in_o via_fw-la the_o judgement_n of_o cardinal_n baronius_n visis_fw-la &_o consideratis_fw-la quae_fw-la superiùs_fw-la diligenti_fw-la pervestigatione_n in_fw-la utramque_fw-la partem_fw-la disputata_fw-la reiectis_fw-la omnino_fw-la &_o exufflatis_fw-la quae_fw-la pro_fw-la par●e_fw-la affirmativa_fw-la fuere_fw-la proposita_fw-la quòd_fw-la scilicet_fw-la liceret_fw-la catholicis_fw-la adire_fw-la ecclesias_fw-la haereticorum_fw-la ut_fw-la superiùs_fw-la sunt_fw-la proposita_fw-la inhaeremus_fw-la saniori_fw-la sententie_n posteriori_fw-la ab_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la catholica_fw-la antiquitùs_fw-la recepta_fw-la &_o usu_fw-la probata_fw-la quod_fw-la scilicet_fw-la ita_fw-la facere_fw-la p●●_n non_fw-la liceat_fw-la quam_fw-la rogo_fw-la nostros_fw-la catholicos_fw-la angl●●_n amplecti_fw-la ex_fw-la animo_fw-la caesar_n cardinalis_fw-la baronius_n titul_fw-la ss_z nerei_fw-la &_o achillei_fw-mi presb._n the_o judgement_n of_o mutius_n vitellescus_n then_o provincial_a now_o general_n of_o the_o order_n of_o the_o jesuit_n vjdi_fw-la rationes_fw-la quae_fw-la in_o hoc_fw-la scripto_fw-la pro_fw-la utraque_fw-la parte_fw-la afferuntur_fw-la &_o existimo_fw-la non_fw-la licere_fw-la u●_n catholicis_fw-la in_o anglia_fw-it ecclesias_fw-la haereticor●s_fw-la adire_fw-la etc._n etc._n et_fw-la puto_fw-la hoc_fw-la debere_fw-la esse_fw-la extra_fw-la contr●●ersiam_fw-la mutius_n vitellescus_n provincialis_fw-la roma●_n provin_n societatis_fw-la jesu_n thus_o much_o in_o general_a touch_v the_o doctrine_n of_o recusancy_n mantayn_v by_o dive●_n learned_a protestant_n and_o practise_v with_o los●_n of_o life_n by_o many_o reverend_a priest_n here_o 〈◊〉_d england_n and_o fortify_v with_o the_o iudgme●●_n of_o these_o three_o former_a most_o learned_a pious_a and_o godly_a men._n animadversion_n clxxix_o ●he_v most_o common_a abuse_n in_o england_n of_o take_v a_o second_o wife_n during_o the_o life_n of_o ●e_n first_o commit_v fornication_n induce_v ●e_n to_o expound_v those_o word_n of_o our_o saviour_n ●om_n whence_o the_o offender_n herein_o seem_v to_o ●arrant_v their_o sensual_a proceed_n for_o thus_o ●●r_a saviour_n in_o matthew_n 19_o speak_v whosoe●er_o shall_v put_v away_o his_o wife_n except_o it_o be_v for_o for●●tation_n and_o shall_v marry_v another_o do_v commit_v adultery_n from_o which_o word_n our_o aduersa●es_n seem_v to_o infer_v that_o who_o do_v put_v away_o ●s_a wife_n for_o fornication_n and_o marry_v another_o do_v not_o commit_v adultery_n but_o this_o be_v ●hus_o answer_v to_o wit_n that_o this_o exception_n 〈◊〉_d fornication_n be_v only_o to_o show_v that_o for_o this_o ●use_n a_o man_n may_v put_v away_o his_o wife_n for_o e●er_n but_o not_o that_o he_o may_v marry_v another_o as_o 〈◊〉_d most_o plain_a in_o 5._o mark_v c._n 10._o
divine_a scripture_n yet_o they_o be_v record_v and_o write_v in_o the_o monument_n of_o the_o ancient_a author_n and_o in_o ecclesiastical_a book_n the_o second_o reason_n may_v be_v the_o continual_a use_n of_o they_o for_o diverse_a tradition_n be_v in_o continual_a observation_n &_o practice_n as_o the_o rite_n and_o ceremony_n of_o administer_a the_o sacrament_n holiday_n appoint_a time_n of_o fast_v the_o celebration_n of_o the_o mass_n and_o of_o divine_a office_n or_o prayer_n and_o such_o like_a the_o three_o cause_n be_v certain_a external_a monument_n which_o continue_v for_o a_o most_o long_a time_n as_o most_o ancient_a temple_n or_o church_n in_o which_o be_v altar_n the_o holy_a font_n for_o baptism_n the_o memorial_n or_o toumb_n of_o saint_n cross_n image_n ecclesiastical_a book_n etc._n etc._n the_o four_o reason_n be_v heresy_n itself_o for_o god_n do_v wonderful_o use_v the_o enemy_n of_o the_o church_n to_o the_o preservation_n of_o the_o church_n for_o because_o as_o in_o every_o age_n there_o have_v rise_v up_o some_o heretyk_n who_o have_v impugn_a diverse_a dogmatic_a tradition_n of_o the_o church_n so_o have_v god_n in_o each_o age_n raise_v certain_a learned_a &_o orthodoxal_a man_n who_o that_o they_o may_v better_o resist_v the_o heretic_n have_v with_o most_o great_a diligence_n and_o labour_n search_v out_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n and_o ancient_a tradition_n and_o have_v transmit_v they_o in_o write_v to_o all_o posterity_n i_o will_v add_v this_o follow_a observation_n in_o full_a warrant_n of_o unwritten_a tradition_n against_o such_o who_o restrain_v the_o proof_n of_o all_o point_n to_o the_o scripture_n itself_o to_o wit_n that_o it_o be_v one_o thing_n for_o a_o article_n of_o faith_n to_o be_v express_v in_o scripture_n another_o thing_n for_o a_o article_n of_o faith_n to_o be_v ground_v upon_o scripture_n all_o christian_a doctrine_n be_v not_o express_v in_o scripture_n yet_o every_o christian_a doctrine_n be_v so_o ground_v on_o scripture_n that_o it_o may_v in_o som●_n sort_n or_o other_o be_v prove_v from_o scripture_n and_o in_o this_o sense_n all_o tradition_n receive_v by_o the_o universal_a church_n of_o christ_n may_v be_v say_v to_o be_v ground_v on_o scripture_n since_o they_o be_v ground_v upon_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n admit_v they_o to_o which_o church_n christ_n himself_o have_v promise_v a_o infallibility_n of_o truth_n and_o of_o not_o err_v according_a to_o that_o ego_fw-la vobiscum_fw-la sum_fw-la omnibus_fw-la diebus_fw-la usque_fw-la consummationem_fw-la saeculi_fw-la math._n 18._o and_o again_o porte_fw-fr inferi_fw-la non_fw-la praevalebunt_fw-la adversum_fw-la eam_fw-la math._n 16._o to_o wit_n against_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n animadversion_n clxxxii_o protestancy_n be_v prove_v to_o be_v a_o intentional_a thing_n in_o itself_o and_o void_a of_o all_o real_a faith_n this_o be_v prove_v from_o the_o definition_n of_o faith_n give_v by_o the_o apostle_n thus_o define_v faith_n fides_fw-la est_fw-la sperandarum_fw-la substantia_fw-la rerum_fw-la argumentum_fw-la non_fw-la apparentium_fw-la that_o be_v faith_n be_v the_o 11._o the_o heb._n 11._o substance_n of_o thing_n to_o be_v hope_v for_o the_o argument_n of_o thing_n not_o appear_v this_o definition_n show_v that_o faith_n be_v a_o supernatural_a virtue_n and_o the_o object_n thereof_o be_v that_o which_o through_o its_o own_o abstrusenes_n &_o sublimity_n can_v be_v apprehend_v or_o conceive_v by_o force_n of_o man_n own_o wit_n it_o transcend_v all_o natural_a reason_n this_o we_o see_v exemplyfy_v in_o the_o two_o supreme_a article_n of_o the_o trinity_n and_o the_o incarnation_n the_o mysterye_n and_o difficulty_n of_o which_o transcend_v all_o humane_a reason_n or_o light_n of_o nature_n and_o hence_o it_o be_v that_o the_o conclusion_n of_o the_o school_n divine_v be_v this_o quae_fw-la 1._o quae_fw-la s._n thomas_n part_n 1._o 2._o quaest_n 1._o fidei_fw-la sunt_fw-la non_fw-la possunt_fw-la esse_fw-la scita_fw-la now_o to_o apply_v this_o if_o protestancy_n be_v a_o supernatural_a faith_n or_o else_o it_o be_v no_o true_a save_v faith_n than_o the_o object_n of_o this_o protestanticall_a faith_n be_v of_o that_o difficult_a nature_n as_o that_o man_n through_o the_o force_n of_o natural_a reason_n only_o can_v give_v any_o assent_n thereto_o without_o the_o special_a concurrency_n of_o god_n grace_n but_o here_o i_o demand_v that_o see_v the_o object_n of_o protestancy_n as_o protestancy_n be_v mere_a negative_n and_o denial_n as_o denial_n of_o real_a presence_n denial_n of_o purgatory_n denial_n of_o freewill_n denial_n of_o pray_v to_o saint_n brief_o denial_n of_o most_o of_o the_o affirmative_a point_n teach_v by_o our_o catholic_a church_n here_o i_o say_v i_o demand_v what_o supernaturality_n or_o force_v of_o god_n special_a concurrency_n be_v require_v that_o man_n shall_v give_v a_o assent_n to_o these_o negation_n or_o denial_n nay_o i_o here_o say_v that_o man_n natural_a reason_n even_o of_o itself_o without_o any_o external_a help_n be_v propense_a and_o incline_v to_o believe_v these_o and_o other_o such_o like_a negation_n except_o the_o affirmative_n to_o those_o negation_n can_v be_v convince_v as_o for_o true_a either_o by_o divine_a or_o humane_a proof_n and_o authority_n thus_o it_o follow_v that_o protestancy_n even_o from_o the_o definition_n of_o faith_n give_v by_o the_o apostle_n be_v no_o supernatural_a faith_n but_o in_o respect_n of_o such_o a_o faith_n be_v a_o mere_a irreality_n and_o waste_v of_o faith_n animadversion_n clxxxiii_o the_o reason_n which_o s._n thomas_n aquinas_n 4._o aquinas_n s._n thom_n in_o 3._o part_n quaest_a 27._o artic_a 4._o do_v insist_v upon_o be_v most_o probable_a inducement_n for_o free_v the_o bless_a virgin_n mary_n from_o original_a sin_n be_v these_o follow_v the_o first_o see_v god_n do_v decree_n to_o advance_v the_o bless_a virgin_n to_o so_o supreme_a dignity_n that_o she_o shall_v excel_v even_o the_o angel_n themselves_o therefore_o it_o be_v most_o suitable_a &_o agreeable_a that_o no_o privilege_n shall_v be_v confer_v upon_o any_o pure_a creature_n which_o be_v not_o confer_v upon_o the_o b._n virgin_n except_o such_o a_o privilege_n be_v repugnant_a to_o the_o condition_n state_n nature_n or_o sex_n but_o to_o be_v sanctify_v in_o the_o first_o instant_n of_o creation_n be_v give_v to_o our_o first_o parent_n as_o also_o to_o be_v sanctify_v in_o the_o first_o instant_n of_o creation_n and_o never_o to_o be_v pollute_v with_o any_o sin_n be_v give_v to_o the_o holy_a angel_n but_o this_o privilege_n be_v in_o no_o sort_n repugnant_a to_o the_o condition_n state_n nature_n or_o sex_n of_o the_o b._n virgin_n therefore_o it_o be_v a_o pious_a thing_n to_o believe_v that_o the_o mother_n of_o god_n do_v not_o want_v this_o privilege_n second_o because_o that_o testimony_n of_o the_o heavenly_a spouse_n ought_v in_o all_o probability_n to_o be_v accomplish_v and_o fulfil_v in_o the_o bless_a virgin_n tota_n 4._o tota_n can._n 4._o pulchra_fw-la es_fw-la amica_fw-la mea_fw-la &_o macula_fw-la non_fw-la est_fw-la in_o te_fw-la three_o because_o the_o mother_n of_o christ_n have_v a_o singular_a affinity_n and_o conjunction_n with_o christ_n himself_o four_o in_o that_o the_o son_n of_o god_n who_o be_v the_o wisdom_n of_o the_o father_n do_v as_o it_o be_v inhabitate_a in_o the_o womb_n of_o the_o mother_n after_o a_o most_o peculiar_a and_o wonderful_a manner_n but_o it_o be_v say_v in_o holy_a scripture_n in_o malevolam_fw-la 1._o malevolam_fw-la wisdom_n c._n 1._o animam_fw-la etc._n etc._n wisdom_n can_v enter_v into_o a_o wicked_a hart_n nor_o dwell_v in_o the_o body_n which_o be_v subject_a to_o sin_n last_o because_o as_o well_o the_o honour_n as_o the_o ignominy_n of_o the_o mother_n redound_v to_o the_o son_n now_o touch_v the_o proof_n of_o the_o assumption_n of_o our_o b._n lady_n both_o in_o body_n &_o soul_n pretermit_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o mariae_fw-la the_o s._n jerome_n write_v a_o sermon_n style_v it_o de_fw-fr eesto_fw-la assumptionis_fw-la mariae_fw-la the_o centurist_n allege_v that_o s._n austin_n do_v write_v a_o book-entituling_a it_o the_o assumptione_n virgin_n mariae_fw-la ancient_a father_n herein_o i_o will_v at_o this_o present_a content_v myself_o with_o the_o argument_n of_o s._n bernard_n in_o proof_n thereof_o who_o thus_o dispute_v see_v god_n have_v discover_v and_o reveal_v the_o body_n of_o many_o saint_n which_o lie_v hide_v in_o diverse_a place_n that_o they_o may_v be_v honour_v of_o faithful_a christian_n it_o then_o inevitable_o follow_v that_o if_o the_o sacred_a body_n of_o the_o bless_a virgin_n have_v be_v still_o on_o earth_n he_o will_v in_o like_a manner_n have_v make_v know_v not_o doubt_n in_o what_o place_n or_o country_n it_o do_v lie_v but_o it_o not_o be_v certain_o know_v where_o that_o body_n or_o any_o part_n thereof_o be_v in_o any_o place_n of_o the_o world_n it_o may_v irr●pliably_o
m●n_z forcible_a to_o wring_v out_o confession_n than_o any_o rac●●_n torment_n for_o the_o proof_n of_o this_o verity_n i_o refer_v the_o studious_a reader_n to_o the_o book_n of_o the_o protestant_n apology_n where_o begin_v at_o the_o page_n 684._o &_o s●quentib_a at_o the_o letter_n m._n in_o the_o margin_n he_o shall_v find_v fyfty_a at_o least_o of_o our_o affirmative_a and_o catholic_a doctrine_n defend_v and_o maintain_v by_o the_o most_o learned_a protestant_n that_o ever_o do_v write_v i_o will_v here_o only_o reckon_v the_o tile_n of_o diverse_a of_o the_o say_a article_n so_o believe_v and_o teach_v by_o the_o protestant_n viz._n 1._o real_a presence_n 2._o that_o sacrament_n do_v confer_v grace_n 3._o the_o sufficiency_n of_o chrict_n corporal_a death_n 4._o that_o christ_n descend_v in_o soul_n into_o limbus_n patrum_fw-la 5._o the_o continual_a visibility_n of_o the_o church_n 6._o the_o necessity_n of_o good_a work_n to_o salvation_n 7._o evangelicall_a counsel_n 8._o the_o doctrine_n of_o universality_n of_o grace_n 9_o that_o god_n do_v only_o permit_v sin_n but_o decree_v it_o not_o 10._o that_o man_n be_v not_o certain_a of_o their_o election_n 11._o that_o to_o child_n of_o the_o faithful_a die_v unbaptise_v salvation_n be_v not_o promise_v 12._o freewill_n 13._o that_o in_o regard_n of_o christ_n passion_n and_o promise_n our_o good_a work_n be_v meritorious_a 14._o temporal_a punishment_n reserve_v by_o god_n in_o justice_n after_o the_o sin_n be_v remit_v 15._o peter_n primacy_n 16._o intercession_n of_o angel_n 17._o intercession_n of_o saint_n 18._o jnuocation_n of_o saint_n 19_o vow_a chastity_n 20._o voluntary_a ●overty_n chastity_n and_o obedience_n 21._o prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a 22._o purgatory_n 23._o limbus_n patrum_fw-la 24._o image_n in_o church_n 25._o worship_v of_o image_n 26._o reverence_n and_o bow_v at_o the_o name_n of_o jesus_n 27._o that_o the_o good_a work_n of_o one_o may_v help_v another_o 28._o power_n of_o a_o priest_n to_o remit_v sin_n 29._o confession_n of_o sin_n 30._o distinction_n of_o mortal_a and_o venial_a sin_n 31._o the_o indifferency_n of_o communion_n under_o one_o kind_n 32._o sacrifice_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n according_a to_o the_o order_n of_o melchisedech_n 33._o the_o possibility_n of_o the_o commandment_n 34._o transubstantiation_n 35._o that_o christ_n be_v god_n of_o god_n 36._o tha●_n christ_n as_o man_n be_v from_o his_o nativity_n free_a from_o ignorance_n and_o be_v full_a of_o knowledge_n 37_o baptism_n of_o woman_n and_o lay_v person_n in_o time_n o●_n necessity_n 38._o seven_o sacrament_n 39_o implicity_n faith_n call_v fides_n implicita_fw-la 40._o that_o antichrist_n be_v yet_o to_o come_v 41._o patronage_n and_o protection_n of_o certain_a angel_n over_o certain_a country_n and_o kingd_a mes_fw-fr 42._o that_o the_o observation_n of_o sunday_n for_o our_o sabaoth_n be_v not_o alterable_a 43_o that_o the_o alteration_n of_o the_o saboth_n from_o saturd●●_n to_o sunday_n not_o prove_v by_o scripture_n 44._o set_a time_n of_o fast_v 45._o the_o true_a visible_a church_n can_v err_v 46._o externall_n judgement_n and_o not_o on●y_a scripture_n appoint_v for_o determine_v of_o controversy_n 47._o that_o the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n be_v monarchical_a 48._o which_o be_v true_a scripture_n determine_v to_o we_o only_o by_o the_o church_n 49._o that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v a_o part_n of_o the_o house_n of_o god_n 50._o unwritten_a tradition_n beside_o some_o other_o catholic_a point_n teach_v by_o the_o learned_a protestant_n here_o now_o i_o demand_v that_o if_o the_o protestant_n proselyt_n and_o follower_n do_v believe_v their_o grand-maister_n in_o diverse_a point_n of_o their_o own_o religion_n why_o then_o shall_v not_o they_o believe_v the_o learned_a protestant_n maintain_v our_o catholic_a doctrine_n ●nt●_n abstract_v from_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n both_o the_o say_v several_a sort_n of_o protestant_n do_v maintain_v their_o contrary_a tenet_n even_o with_o equal_a and_o indifferent_a privilege_n of_o their_o own_o private_a spirit_n animadversion_n clxxxviii_o as_o above_o i_o compare_v luther_n be_v catholic_a touch_v manner_n and_o conversation_n of_o life_n with_o luther_n be_v protestant_a so_o here_o i_o will_v make_v another_o comparative_a between_o the_o life_n of_o catholic_n and_o of_o protestant_n and_o here_o it_o be_v to_o be_v observe_v that_o i_o will_v not_o compare_v the_o most_o pious_a man_n in_o former_a time_n with_o the_o best_a of_o the_o protestant_n nor_o the_o worst_a man_n for_o life_n of_o the_o one_o religion_n with_o the_o worst_a of_o the_o other_o but_o for_o the_o great_a confront_v of_o our_o adversary_n and_o advantage_n to_o our_o catholic_a cause_n i_o will_v compare_v the_o decline_a state_n of_o catholic_a time_n with_o the_o best_a time_n of_o protestancy_n which_o be_v presume_v to_o be_v at_o the_o first_o entrance_n and_o beginning_n of_o protestancy_n when_o the_o first_o protestant_n enjoy_v the_o ●rimitiae_fw-la and_o first_o fruit_n of_o their_o religion_n this_o point_n will_v be_v make_v evident_a even_o from_o the_o confession_n of_o the_o protestant_n themselves_o first_o then_o we_o find_v luther_n himself_o thus_o to_o write_v from_o aduentus_fw-la from_o luth_n in_o postill_a super_fw-la euangel_n domini●ae_fw-la primae_fw-la aduentus_fw-la the_o time_n in_o which_o the_o pure_a doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v first_o reveal_v to_o light_n the_o world_n have_v grow_v daily_o worse_o man_n be_v more_o revengeful_a covetous_a licentious_a than_o they_o be_v ever_o before_o in_o the_o papacy_n with_o who_o musculus_fw-la agree_v thus_o complain_v hereof_o ut_fw-la verum_fw-la 62._o verum_fw-la musculus_fw-la in_o loc_fw-la come_v in_o cap_n de_fw-fr decalog_n pag._n 62._o ess●_n fateor_fw-la etc._n etc._n to_o confess_v the_o truth_n man_n be_v become_v so_o u●●ike_v themselves_o that_o whereas_o in_o the_o papacy_n they_o be_v religious_a in_o their_o error_n and_o superstition_n now_o in_o the_o light_n of_o the_o know_a truth_n they_o be_v more_o propha●●_n than_o the_o very_a son_n of_o the_o world_n i_o wi●●_n conclude_v with_o the_o testimony_n of_o erasmus_n thus_o discourse_v of_o this_o point_n quos_fw-la germaniae_fw-la quos_fw-la erasmus_fw-la ep._n ad_fw-la fratres_fw-la inferioris_fw-la germaniae_fw-la a●tea_fw-la noveram_fw-la etc._n etc._n such_o man_n as_o i_o know_v to_o be_v before_o upright_o candid_a modest_a and_o sincere_a in_o the●_n conversation_n after_o they_o have_v embrace_v th●●_n new_a sect_n mean_v of_o the_o gospel_n they_o instant_o begin_v to_o talk_v of_o young_a woman_n to_o play●_n die_n to_o leave_v of_o prayer_n to_o be_v most_o impatient_a &_o revengeful_a of_o injury_n and_o to_o conclude_v to_o aba●don_v all_o humanity_n expertus_fw-la loquor_fw-la thus_o far_o ●rusmus_n and_o thus_o much_o of_o the_o balance_a o●_n man_n of_o these_o two_o several_a religion_n no●_n i_o here_o refer_v to_o a_o indifferent_a judgmen●_n whether_o it_o be_v not_o a_o great_a blemish_n to_o protestancy_n that_o it_o be_v confess_v by_o the_o protestant's_n that_o the_o professor_n thereof_o even_o 〈◊〉_d their_o best_a time_n be_v far_o worse_o and_o mo●_n wicked_a in_o manner_n than_o the_o catholics_n their_o worst_a and_o most_o decline_a time_n animadversion_n clxxxix_o the_o protestant_n much_o solace_n themsel●●_n in_o allege_v certain_a text_n of_o script●●_n in_o proof_n of_o justification_n by_o faith_n only_o wh●●_n passage_n be_v true_o weigh_v be_v find_v 〈◊〉_d be_v most_o weak_o or_o rather_o impertinent_a allege_v as_o in_o math._n 9_o thy_o faith_n have_v s●●_n thou_o john_n 3_o who_o believe_v in_o the_o son_n h●_n eternal_a life_n final_o to_o omit_v some_o o●●_n such_o seem_a text_n rom._n 5._o we_o be_v deify_v by_o faith_n let_v we_o have_v peace_n towards_o god_n t●_n these_o and_z such_o like_v i_o answer_v and_o deny_v that_o it_o follow_v that_o faith_n only_o iustify_v though_o only_a faith_n be_v name_v for_o sometime_o also_o other_o virtue_n be_v only_o name_v or_o the_o sacrament_n for_o example_n luc._n 7._o we_o read_v many_o sin_n be_v forgive_v she_o because_o she_o love_v much_o job._n 12._o alm_n deed_n free_v from_o death_n rom._n 8._o by_o hope_n we_o be_v save_v final_o titus_n 3_o he_o have_v save_v we_o by_o the_o law_n of_o regeneration_n besides_o many_o other_o such_o passage_n and_o yet_o no_o man_n will_v gather_v from_o the●e_n authority_n that_o charity_n or_o almesdeed_n or_o hope_v or_o baptism_n do_v iusti●y_o without_o faith_n therefore_o when_o many_o different_a cause_n concur_v to_o produce_v one_o effect_n the_o scripture_n ascribe_v the_o same_o effect_v sometime_o to_o one_o cause_n sometime_o to_o another_o and_o yet_o the_o scripture_n do_v not_o intend_v thereby_o to_o signify_v that_o one_o cause_n be_v sufficient_a without_o the_o other_o cause_n now_o the_o reason_n why_o the_o apostle_n more_o frequent_o attribute_n justification_n to_o faith_n